Selected quad for the lemma: england_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
england_n henry_n king_n pope_n 16,586 5 6.9376 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A29201 A replication to the Bishop of Chalcedon his Survey of the Vindication of the Church of England from criminous schism clearing the English laws from the aspertion of cruelty : with an appendix in answer to the exceptions of S.W. / by the Right Reverend John Bramhall ... Bramhall, John, 1594-1663. 1656 (1656) Wing B4228; ESTC R8982 229,419 463

There are 30 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

church_n from_o rome_n 2._o yet_o something_o he_o say_v upon_o the_o by_o which_o be_v to_o be_v examine_v first_o that_o they_o who_o make_v the_o king_n head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v zelots_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n that_o they_o be_v not_o then_o of_o the_o roman_a religion_n but_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n outward_o whatsoever_o they_o be_v inward_o what_o a_o change_n be_v here_o even_o now_o when_o they_o oppose_v the_o reformation_n they_o be_v the_o best_a bishop_n and_o now_o when_o they_o oppose_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n they_o be_v schismatic_n and_o heretic_n let_v they_o be_v what_o they_o be_v or_o whatsoever_o he_o will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v certain_o they_o be_v no_o protestant_n and_o if_o they_o be_v not_o roman_a catholic_n they_o be_v of_o no_o christian_a communion_n they_o profess_v to_o live_v roman_a catholic_n and_o they_o die_v roman_a catholic_n the_o six_o bloody_a article_n contrive_v by_o they_o and_o execute_v by_o they_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n henry_n and_o the_o bonfire_n which_o they_o make_v of_o poor_a protestant_n in_o the_o day_n of_o queen_n mary_n do_v demonstrate_v both_o that_o they_o be_v no_o protestant_n and_o that_o they_o be_v zelots_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n but_o say_v he_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n do_v consist_v in_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o pope_n if_o it_o be_v so_o then_o whereas_o the_o christian_a religion_n have_v twelve_o article_n the_o roman_a religion_n have_v but_o one_o article_n and_o that_o none_o of_o the_o twelve_o namely_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o this_o needs_o make_v no_o difference_n between_o we_o for_o they_o deny_v not_o the_o pope_n primacy_n that_o be_v of_o order_n but_o his_o supremacy_n of_o power_n neither_o be_v his_o supremacy_n either_o the_o essence_n or_o so_o essential_a a_o part_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n belief_n but_o that_o many_o of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n communion_n have_v deny_v it_o of_o old_a as_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basile_n and_o many_o do_v deny_v it_o and_o more_o doubt_n of_o it_o at_o this_o day_n but_o let_v that_o be_v as_o it_o will_n in_o all_o other_o controversy_n they_o be_v pure_a romanist_n and_o the_o denomination_n be_v from_o the_o great_a part_n certain_o they_o be_v no_o protestant_n which_o be_v enough_o for_o my_o purpose_n he_o tell_v we_o from_o bishop_n gardiner_n compel_v that_o the_o parliament_n be_v with_o much_o cruelty_n constrain_v to_o abolish_v the_o primacy_n he_o mean_v supremacy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n a_o likely_a thing_n indeed_o that_o a_o whole_a parliament_n and_o among_o they_o above_o fifty_o bishop_n and_o abbet_n shall_v be_v force_v without_o any_o noise_n against_o their_o conscience_n to_o forswear_v themselves_o to_o deny_v the_o essence_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o to_o use_v his_o own_o word_n to_o turn_v schismatic_n and_o heretic_n how_o many_o of_o they_o lose_v their_o life_n first_o not_o one_o not_o one_o change_v his_o soil_n not_o one_o suffer_v imprisonment_n about_o it_o for_o howsoever_o the_o matter_n have_v be_v misconstrue_v by_o some_o of_o our_o historiographer_n bishop_n fisher_n and_o sir_n thomas_n moor_n be_v imprison_v before_o this_o act_n of_o the_o supremacy_n be_v make_v for_o deny_v the_o king_n marriage_n and_o oppose_v a_o former_a act_n of_o parliament_n touch_v the_o succession_n of_o his_o child_n to_o the_o crown_n thus_o much_o be_v confess_v by_o sander_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr schismate_fw-la p._n 73._o b._n concern_v fisher_n and_o p._n 81._o concern_v sir_n thomas_n moor._n quae_fw-la lex_fw-la post_fw-la mori_n apprehensionem_fw-la constituta_fw-la erat_fw-la the_o law_n of_o supremacy_n be_v make_v after_o the_o apprehension_n of_o sir_n thomas_n moor_n of_o this_o much_o cruelty_n i_o do_v not_o find_v so_o much_o as_o a_o threaten_a word_n or_o a_o footstep_n except_o the_o fear_n of_o a_o praemunire_n and_o be_v it_o credible_a that_o the_o whole_a representative_a of_o the_o church_n and_o kingdom_n shall_v value_v their_o good_n above_o their_o soul_n or_o that_o two_o successive_a synod_n and_o both_o our_o university_n nemine_fw-la dissentiente_fw-la shall_v be_v so_o easy_o constrain_v but_o who_o constrain_v the_o most_o learned_a of_o the_o bishop●_n and_o the_o great_a divine_n in_o the_o kingdom_n to_o tell_v the_o king_n that_o it_o be_v his_o right_n to_o publish_v catechism_n or_o institution_n and_o other_o book_n and_o to_o preach_v sermon_n at_o st._n paul_n cross_n and_o elsewhere_o for_o maintenance_n of_o the_o king_n supremacy_n these_o act_n be_v unconstrained_a hear_v the_o testimony_n of_o queen_n eizabeth_n give_v in_o their_o life_n time_n to_o their_o face_n before_o the_o most_o eminent_a ambassador_n of_o the_o great_a person_n in_o the_o world_n when_o bishop_n gardiner_n may_v have_v contradict_v it_o if_o he_o can_v when_o the_o emperor_n and_o other_o roman_n catholic_n prince_n intercede_v with_o she_o for_o the_o displace_v bishop_n she_o return_v this_o answer_n that_o they_o do_v now_o obstinate_o reject_v that_o doctrine_n which_o most_o part_n of_o themselves_o under_o henry_n the_o eight_o and_o edward_n the_o six_o 1559._o have_v of_o their_o own_o accord_n with_o heart_n and_o hand_n public_o in_o their_o sermon_n and_o write_n teach_v unto_o other_o when_o they_o themselves_o be_v not_o private_a person_n but_o public_a magistrate_n the_o charge_n be_v so_o particular_a that_o it_o leave_v no_o place_n for_o any_o answer_n first_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n second_o not_o only_o under_o henry_n the_o eight_o but_z edward_z the_o six_o three_o when_o they_o themselves_o be_v public_a magistrate_n four_o with_o heart_n and_o hand_n not_o only_o in_o their_o sermon_n but_o also_o in_o their_o print_a write_n against_o subscription_n and_o print_v write_n there_o can_v be_v no_o defence_n but_o upon_o who_o credit_n be_v this_o constraint_n charge_v upon_o king_n henry_n upon_o bishop_n gardiner_n in_o good_a time_n he_o produce_v a_o witness_n in_o his_o own_o cause_n he_o have_v a_o hard_a heart_n of_o his_o own_o if_o he_o will_v not_o have_v favour_a himself_o and_o help_v to_o conceal_v his_o own_o shame_n after_o king_n henry_n be_v dead_a mortui_fw-la non_fw-la mordent_fw-la gardiner_z be_v not_o this_o that_o stephen_n gardiner_n that_o write_v the_o book_n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la obedientia_fw-la to_o justify_v the_o king_n supremacy_n be_v not_o this_o that_o stephen_n gardiner_n that_o tell_v we_o that_o no_o foreign_a bishop_n have_v authority_n among_o we_o that_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n be_v agree_v with_o we_o upon_o this_o point_n with_o most_o steadfast_a consent_n that_o no_o manner_n of_o person_n breed_v or_o bring_v up_o in_o england_n have_v aught_o to_o do_v with_o rome_n be_v not_o this_o he_o that_o have_v so_o great_a a_o hand_n in_o frame_v the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n and_o in_o all_o the_o great_a transaction_n in_o the_o late_a day_n of_o king_n henry_n be_v not_o he_o one_o of_o they_o who_o tickle_v the_o king_n ear_n with_o sermon_n against_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n 5._o who_o be_v a_o contriver_n of_o the_o six_o bloody_a article_n against_o the_o protestant_n and_o be_v able_a by_o his_o power_n with_o the_o king_n to_o bring_v the_o great_a favourite_n of_o those_o time_n to_o the_o scaffold_n for_o heresy_n and_o treason_n to_o conclude_v if_o any_o thing_n do_v constrain_v he_o it_o be_v either_o the_o bishopric_n of_o london_n or_o winchester_n or_o which_o i_o do_v the_o rather_o believe_v out_o of_o charity_n the_o very_a power_n of_o conscience_n so_o much_o himself_o confess_v in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la obedientia_fw-la where_o he_o propose_v this_o objection_n against_o himself_o fine_a that_o as_o a_o bishop_n he_o have_v swear_v to_o maintain_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o which_o he_o answer_v that_o what_o be_v holy_o swear_v be_v more_o holy_o omit_v then_o to_o make_v a_o oath_n the_o bond_n of_o iniquity_n he_o confess_v himself_o to_o have_v be_v marry_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n bona_fw-la fide_fw-la as_o to_o his_o second_o wife_n but_o after_o the_o return_n of_o his_o first_o wife_n that_o be_v the_o truth_n to_o which_o he_o be_v espouse_v in_o his_o baptism_n be_v convict_v with_o undeniable_a evidence_n he_o be_v necessitate_v out_o of_o conscience_n to_o forsake_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o this_o particular_a question_n of_o supremacy_n and_o to_o adhere_v to_o his_o first_o wife_n the_o truth_n and_o after_o she_o to_o his_o prince_n the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o english_a church_n upon_o earth_n his_o next_o attempt_n be_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o protestant_n be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o separation_n from_o rome_n and_o he_o name_v three_o cranmer_z crumwell_n and_o barnes_n he_o
may_v even_o as_o well_o say_v that_o two_o or_o three_o common_a soldier_n of_o the_o carthaginian_a army_n and_o perhaps_o not_o one_o of_o they_o at_o the_o fight_n be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o roman_a overthrow_n at_o cannae_n it_o be_v the_o university_n that_o approve_v the_o separation_n unanimous_o it_o be_v the_o synod_n that_o direct_v the_o separation_n it_o be_v the_o king_n that_o establish_v the_o separation_n it_o be_v the_o parliament_n that_o confirm_v the_o separation_n how_o can_v two_o or_o three_o privado_n without_o negromancy_n have_v such_o a_o efficatious_a influence_n upon_o the_o university_n and_o synod_n and_o parliament_n and_o the_o king_n himself_o yet_o they_o may_v have_v a_o hand_n in_o it_o no_o nor_o so_o much_o as_o a_o little_a finger_n as_o much_o as_o the_o fly_n that_o sit_v upon_o the_o cartwheel_n have_v in_o raise_v of_o the_o dust_n the_o two_o house_n of_o parliament_n alone_o do_v consist_v of_o above_o 600._o of_o the_o most_o able_a and_o eminent_a person_n in_o the_o kingdom_n what_o have_v these_o three_o be_v able_a to_o do_v among_o they_o suppose_v they_o have_v be_v than_o protestant_n and_o of_o the_o house_n even_o as_o much_o as_o three_o drop_n of_o honey_n in_o a_o great_a vessel_n of_o vinegar_n or_o three_o drop_n of_o vinegar_n in_o a_o great_a vessel_n of_o honey_n but_o let_v we_o see_v what_o it_o be_v cranmer_z which_o he_o object_n against_o cranmer_n and_o the_o rest_n that_o cranmer_n who_o i_o will_v not_o deny_v to_o have_v be_v a_o friend_n and_o favourer_n of_o protestant_n advise_v that_o the_o king_n shall_v seek_v no_o more_o to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o bid_n adieu_o to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n he_o shall_v consult_v with_o the_o most_o learned_a in_o the_o university_n of_o europe_n at_o home_n and_o abroad_o there_o be_v no_o hurt_n in_o all_o this_o there_o can_v be_v no_o suspicion_n that_o the_o most_o learned_a in_o all_o the_o university_n of_o europe_n shall_v be_v enemy_n to_o the_o just_a right_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n but_o upon_o this_o say_v he_o it_o be_v by_o commission_n dispute_v by_o the_o divine_n in_o both_o university_n and_o so_o he_o conclude_v triumphant_o behold_v cranmer_n the_o first_o author_n of_o secession_n from_o the_o pope_n i_o answer_v that_o this_o secession_n be_v no_o secession_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n nor_o this_o disputation_n any_o disputation_n concern_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n over_o the_o english_a church_n but_o only_o concern_v a_o particular_a process_n there_o depend_v between_o king_n hen●y_n and_o queen_n katherine_n about_o the_o validity_n or_o invalidity_n of_o their_o marriage_n and_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n which_o cranmer_n maintain_v to_o be_v determinable_a by_o divine_a law_n not_o by_o canon_n law_n the_o truth_n be_v this_o doctor_n stephens_n and_o doctor_n fox_n two_o great_a minister_n of_o king_n henry_n and_o doctor_z cranmer_z chance_v to_o meet_v without_o any_o design_n at_o waltham_n where_o discourse_n be_v offer_v concern_v this_o process_n cranmer_n free_o declare_v his_o judgement_n that_o the_o marriage_n of_o a_o brother_n with_o his_o brother_n wife_n be_v unlawful_a by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o dispense_v with_o it_o and_o that_o it_o be_v more_o expedient_a and_o more_o proper_a to_o seek_v to_o have_v this_o cause_n determine_v by_o the_o best_a divine_n and_o university_n of_o europe_n then_o by_o the_o dilatory_a proceed_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n this_o be_v relate_v to_o the_o king_n the_o king_n send_v for_o cranmer_n he_o offer_v free_o to_o justify_v it_o before_o the_o pope_n and_o to_o demonstrate_v both_o that_o this_o be_v no_o separation_n from_o rome_n 8._o and_o that_o cranmer_n himself_o be_v no_o protestant_n at_o that_o time_n it_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o all_o our_o historiographer_n that_o after_o this_o cranmer_z with_o other_o be_v send_v as_o a_o ambassador_n or_o envoy_n to_o rome_n and_o return_v home_o in_o the_o pope_n good_a grace_n not_o without_o a_o mark_n of_o his_o favour_n be_v make_v his_o penitentiary_n likewise_o say_v another_o cranmer_z that_o unworthy_a archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n be_v his_o the_o earl_n of_o hartford_n right_a hand_n 413._o and_o chief_a assistant_n in_o the_o work_n although_o but_o a_o few_o month_n before_o he_o be_v of_o king_n harry_n religion_n yea_o a_o great_a patron_n and_o prosecutor_n of_o the_o six_o article_n that_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v no_o friend_n no_o favourer_n of_o protestant_n so_o this_o victorious_a argument_n fail_v on_o both_o side_n henricus_fw-la some_o other_o place_n he_o cit_v concern_v cranmer_n that_o he_o free_v the_o king_n conscience_n from_o the_o yoke_n of_o papal_a dominion_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o that_o process_n that_o by_o his_o counsel_n destruction_n be_v provide_v divine_o to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v occasional_o and_o by_o the_o just_a disposition_n of_o almighty_a god_n that_o the_o king_n be_v bring_v by_o cranmer_n singular_a virtue_n to_o defend_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o be_v in_o that_o particular_a case_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v dispense_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o last_o that_o the_o papal_a power_n be_v discover_v by_o king_n henry_n authority_n and_o cranmer_n do_v easy_o fall_v down_o i_o much_o doubt_n if_o i_o have_v the_o book_n whether_o i_o shall_v find_v these_o testimony_n such_o as_o they_o be_v cite_v howsoever_o it_o may_v be_v true_a distinguendo_fw-la tempora_fw-la and_o referendo_fw-la singula_fw-la singulis_fw-la they_o can_v not_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o first_o separation_n when_o cranmer_n have_v no_o more_o authority_n than_o a_o private_a doctor_n but_o of_o the_o follow_a time_n king_n henry_n suppress_v the_o papal_a tyranny_n in_o england_n by_o his_o legislative_a power_n and_o cranmer_n by_o his_o discovery_n of_o their_o usurpation_n and_o care_v to_o see_v the_o law_n execute_v crumwell_n against_o crumwell_n he_o produce_v but_o one_o testimony_n that_o it_o be_v general_o conceive_v and_o true_o as_o never_o think_v that_o the_o politic_a way_n for_o take_v away_o the_o pope_n authority_n in_o england_n and_o the_o suppression_n of_o religious_a house_n be_v principal_o devise_v by_o crumwell_n first_o this_o be_v but_o a_o argument_n from_o vulgar_a opinion_n second_o when_o archbishop_n warham_n and_o the_o synod_n do_v first_o give_v to_o king_n henry_n the_o supremacy_n and_o the_o title_n of_o head_n of_o the_o english_a church_n crumwell_n be_v no_o protestant_n he_o have_v late_o be_v cardinal_n wolsy_n solicitor_n and_o be_v then_o master_n of_o the_o jewel_n house_n of_o no_o such_o power_n to_o do_v any_o great_a good_a or_o hurt_n to_o the_o protestant_n and_o at_o his_o death_n he_o profess_v that_o he_o be_v no_o sacramentary_a and_o that_o he_o die_v in_o the_o catholic_n faith_n lord_n cherbury_n in_o h._n 8._o anno_fw-la 1540_o holl._n a_o 32._o h._n 8._o fol._n 242._o but_o for_o the_o suppression_n of_o religious_a house_n it_o be_v not_o improbable_a he_o may_v well_o have_v learn_v that_o way_n under_o cardinal_n wolsy_n when_o he_o procure_v the_o suppression_n of_o forty_o monastery_n of_o good_a note_n for_o the_o sound_n of_o his_o two_o college_n at_o oxford_n and_o ipswich_n in_o which_o business_n our_o historian_n say_v the_o pope_n lick_v his_o own_o finger_n to_o the_o value_n of_o twelve_o barrel_n full_a of_o gold_n and_o silver_n last_o for_o doctor_n barnes_n poor_a man_n barnes_n he_o be_v neither_o courtier_n nor_o councelor_n nor_o convocation_n man_n nor_o parliament_n man_n all_o the_o grace_n which_o ever_o he_o receive_v from_o king_n henry_n be_v a_o honourable_a death_n for_o his_o religion_n he_o say_v that_o he_o and_o such_o other_o wretch_n as_o he_o have_v make_v the_o king_n a_o whole_a king_n by_o their_o sermon_n if_o they_o do_v so_o it_o be_v well_o do_v the_o meaning_n of_o a_o whole_a king_n be_v a_o head_n of_o the_o church_n say_v r._n c._n it_o may_v be_v so_o but_o the_o consequence_n be_v naught_o perhaps_o he_o mean_v a_o sovereign_n independent_a king_n not_o feudatory_a to_o the_o pope_n which_o he_o that_o be_v be_v but_o half_a a_o king_n not_o only_o of_o old_a but_o in_o late_a time_n the_o pope_n do_v challenge_v a_o power_n paramount_n over_o the_o king_n of_o england_n within_o their_o own_o dominion_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o pope_n bull_n send_v to_o james_n the_o five_o king_n of_o scotland_n wherein_o he_o declare_v that_o he_o have_v deprive_v king_n henry_n of_o his_o kingdom_n as_o a_o heretic_n a_o schismatic_a 21._o a_o adulterer_n a_o murderer_n a_o sacrilegious_a person_n and_o last_o a_o rebel_n and_o convict_v of_o laesae_fw-la majestatis_fw-la for_o that_o he_o have_v rise_v
pope_n but_o for_o many_o of_o the_o rest_n and_o especial_o for_o that_o which_o do_v virtual_o include_v they_o all_o that_o be_v the_o legislative_a power_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n wherein_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o kingdom_n do_v claim_v a_o near_a interest_n in_o respect_n of_o that_o receptive_a power_n which_o they_o have_v ever_o enjoy_v to_o admit_v or_o not_o admit_v such_o new_a law_n whereby_o they_o be_v to_o be_v govern_v it_o have_v be_v folly_n and_o madness_n in_o the_o pope_n to_o have_v attempt_v upon_o it_o one_o doubt_v still_o remain_v how_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o crown_n for_o they_o may_v be_v apt_a enough_o in_o those_o day_n to_o use_v such_o improper_a expression_n matter_n first_o with_o the_o romanist_n themselves_o i_o distinguish_v between_o habitual_a and_o actual_a jurisdiction_n habitual_a jurisdiction_n be_v derive_v only_o by_o ordination_n actual_a jurisdiction_n be_v a_o right_a to_o exercise_v that_o habit_n arise_v from_o the_o lawful_a application_n of_o the_o matter_n or_o subject_n in_o this_o late_a the_o lie_v patron_n and_o much_o more_o the_o sovereign_a prince_n have_v their_o respective_a interest_n and_o concurrence_n diocese_n and_o parish_n be_v not_o of_o divine_a but_o humane_a institution_n and_o the_o same_o person_n be_v bear_v subject_n before_o they_o be_v make_v christian_n the_o ordinary_a give_v a_o school_n master_n a_o licence_n or_o habitual_a power_n to_o teach_v but_o it_o be_v the_o parent_n of_o the_o child_n who_o apply_v or_o subtract_v the_o matter_n and_o furnish_v he_o with_o scholar_n or_o afford_v he_o a_o fit_a subject_n whereupon_o to_o exercise_v this_o habitual_a power_n second_o we_o must_v also_o distinguish_v between_o the_o interior_a and_o exterior_a court_n between_o the_o court_n of_o conscience_n and_o the_o court_n of_o the_o church_n for_o in_o both_o these_o court_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n have_v place_n but_o not_o in_o both_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n that_o power_n which_o be_v exercise_v in_o the_o court_n of_o conscience_n for_o bind_v and_o lose_v of_o sin_n be_v sole_o from_o ordination_n prince_n but_o that_o power_n which_o be_v exercise_v in_o the_o court_n of_o the_o church_n be_v partly_o from_o the_o sovereign_a magistrate_n especial_o in_o england_n where_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n be_v enlarge_v and_o fortify_v with_o a_o coercive_a power_n and_o the_o bound_n thereof_o have_v be_v much_o dilate_v by_o the_o favour_n and_o piety_n of_o christian_a prince_n by_o who_o many_o cause_n have_v be_v make_v of_o ecclesiastical_a cognisance_n which_o former_o be_v not_o &_o from_o who_o the_o coercive_a or_o compulsory_a power_n of_o summon_v the_o king_n subject_n by_o process_n and_o citation_n be_v derive_v it_o be_v not_o then_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n or_o any_o part_n or_o branch_n thereof_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n even_o in_o the_o exterior_a court_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o crown_n but_o it_o be_v coercive_a and_o compulsory_a and_o coroboratory_n power_n it_o be_v the_o application_n of_o the_o matter_n it_o be_v the_o regulate_v of_o the_o exercise_n of_o actual_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdicton_n in_o the_o court_n of_o the_o church_n to_o prevent_v the_o oppression_n of_o their_o subject_n and_o to_o provide_v for_o the_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n which_o belong_v to_o sovereign_a prince_n as_o to_o his_o corollary_n that_o never_o any_o king_n of_o england_n before_o henry_n the_o eight_o do_v challenge_v a_o exemption_n from_o all_o jurisdiction_n under_o christ_n key_n it_o be_v as_o gross_a a_o mistake_n as_o all_o the_o rest_n for_o neither_o do_v henry_n the_o eight_o challenge_v any_o such_o exemption_n in_o the_o court_n of_o conscience_n among_o the_o six_o bloody_a article_n establish_v by_o himself_o that_o of_o auricular_a confession_n be_v one_o nor_o in_o the_o court_n of_o the_o church_n see_v the_o direct_a contrary_n be_v express_o provide_v for_o in_o the_o statute_n itself_o xxi_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n for_o the_o time_n be_v and_o his_o successor_n shall_v have_v power_n and_o authority_n from_o time_n to_o time_n by_o their_o discretion_n to_o give_v grant_v and_o dispose_v by_o a_o instrument_n under_o the_o seal_n of_o the_o say_a archbishop_n unto_o your_o majesty_n and_o to_o your_o heir_n and_o successor_n king_n of_o this_o realm_n as_o well_o all_o manner_n of_o such_o licence_n dispensation_n composition_n faculty_n grant_n rescript_n delegacy_n instrument_n and_o all_o other_o write_n for_o cause_n not_o be_v contrary_a or_o repugnant_a to_o holy_a scripture_n and_o law_n of_o god_n as_o heretofore_o hat●_n be_v use_v and_o accustom_v to_o be_v have_v and_o obtain_v by_o your_o highness_n or_o any_o of_o your_o most_o noble_a progenitor_n or_o any_o of_o you_o or_o their_o subject_n at_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n so_o vain_a a_o suggestion_n it_o be_v that_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o do_v free_v himself_o not_o only_o from_o papal_a authority_n but_o also_o and_o as_o well_o from_o episcopal_a archiepiscopall_a and_o all_o spiritual_a authority_n either_o abroad_o or_o in_o england_n 2._o and_o his_o argument_n which_o he_o press_v so_o serious_o to_o prove_v it_o be_v as_o vain_a that_o the_o head_n of_o a_o company_n be_v under_o none_o of_o that_o company_n the_o pope_n himself_o be_v under_o his_o confessor_n who_o have_v power_n to_o bind_v he_o or_o loose_v he_o in_o the_o court_n of_o conscience_n the_o master_n of_o a_o family_n be_v under_o his_o own_o chaplain_n for_o the_o regiment_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o under_o his_o physician_n for_o the_o government_n of_o his_o body_n what_o shall_v hinder_v it_o that_o a_o political_a head_n may_v not_o be_v under_o a_o ecclesiastical_a pastor_n the_o king_n of_o england_n be_v not_o only_o under_o the_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n of_o a_o general_a council_n but_o also_o under_o their_o ecclesiastical_a pastor_n though_o their_o own_o subject_n only_o they_o be_v exempt_v from_o all_o coercive_a and_o compulsory_a power_n let_v we_o try_v whether_o he_o be_v more_o fortunate_a in_o oppose_v than_o he_o have_v be_v in_o answer_v the_o king_n of_o england_n say_v he_o permit_v appeal_v to_o rome_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n as_o be_v evident_a in_o st._n wilfrides_n case_n wilfrid_n who_o be_v never_o reprove_v nor_o dislike_v for_o appeal_n twice_o to_o rome_n not_o so_o but_o the_o clear_a contrary_n appear_v evident_o in_o saint_n wilfrides_n case_n though_o he_o be_v a_o archbishop_n and_o if_o a_o appeal_n have_v be_v proper_a in_o any_o case_n it_o have_v be_v in_o that_o case_n 705._o this_o pretend_a appeal_n be_v not_o only_a much_o dislike_v but_o reject_v by_o two_o king_n successive_o by_o the_o other_o archbishop_n and_o by_o the_o body_n of_o the_o english_a clergy_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o event_n for_o wilfride_n have_v no_o benefit_n of_o the_o pope_n sentence_n but_o be_v force_v after_o all_o his_o struggle_a to_o quit_v the_o two_o monastery_n which_o be_v in_o question_n whether_o he_o will_v or_o not_o and_o to_o sit_v down_o with_o his_o archbishopric_n which_o he_o may_v allwny_v have_v hold_v peaceable_o if_o he_o will_v this_o agree_v with_o his_o suppose_a vision_n in_o france_n that_o at_o his_o return_n into_o his_o country_n he_o shall_v receive_v the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o possession_n that_o have_v be_v take_v from_o he_o 20._o that_o be_v praesulatum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la suae_fw-la his_o archbishopric_n but_o not_o his_o two_o monastery_n but_o this_o be_v much_o more_o plain_a by_o the_o very_a word_n of_o king_n alfride_n cite_v by_o i_o in_o the_o vindication_n to_o which_o r._n c._n have_v offer_v no_o answer_n that_o he_o honour_v the_o pope_n nuncios_fw-la for_o their_o grave_a life_n and_o honourable_a look_n here_o be_v not_o a_o word_n of_o their_o credentiall_a letter_n o_o how_o will_v a_o nuncio_n storm_n at_o this_o and_o take_v it_o as_o a_o affront_n the_o king_n tell_v they_o further_o that_o he_o can_v not_o give_v any_o assent_n to_o their_o legation_n so_o that_o which_o r._n c._n call_v permit_v be_v in_o truth_n downright_o dissent_v and_o reject_v the_o reason_n follow_v because_o it_o be_v against_o reason_n that_o a_o person_n twice_o condemn_v by_o the_o whole_a council_n of_o the_o english_a shall_v be_v restore_v upon_o the_o pope_n letter_n be_v not_o this_o dislike_n what_o can_v the_o king_n say_v more_o incivillity_n then_o to_o tell_v the_o pope_n nuncios_fw-la that_o their_o master_n demand_n be_v unreasonable_a or_o what_o can_v be_v more_o to_o the_o purpose_n and_o to_o the_o utter_a ruin_n of_o r._n c._n his_o cause_n then_o that_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v impugn_a not_o once_o but_o twice_o not_o by_o a_o few_o
prince_n or_o prince_n but_o a_o whole_a succession_n of_o king_n with_o their_o convocation_n and_o parliament_n proceed_v according_a to_o the_o fundamental_a law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n so_o he_o may_v have_v spare_v his_o instance_n of_o saul_n and_o uzziah_n but_o he_o faith_n conscience_n that_o what_o king_n henry_n do_v in_o such_o matter_n be_v plain_o against_o his_o own_o conscience_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o frequent_a and_o earnest_a desire_n to_o be_v reunite_v to_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v a_o bold_a presumption_n in_o he_o to_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o judge_v of_o another_o man_n conscience_n god_n alone_o know_v the_o secret_a turn_n and_o wind_n of_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n though_o he_o have_v desire_v a_o reconciliation_n with_o rome_n yet_o charity_n require_v that_o we_o shall_v rather_o judge_v that_o he_o have_v change_v his_o mind_n then_o that_o he_o violate_v his_o conscience_n neither_o will_v this_o uncharitable_a censure_n if_o it_o be_v true_a advantage_n his_o cause_n the_o black_a of_o a_o bean_n his_o conscience_n may_v make_v the_o reformation_n sinful_a in_o he_o but_o not_o unlawful_a in_o itself_o the_o lawfullness_n or_o unlawfullness_n of_o the_o action_n within_o itself_o depend_v not_o upon_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o doer_n but_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o thing_n do_v his_o witness_n be_v bishop_n gardiner_n and_o nicholas_n sanders_n 5._o the_o former_a a_o great_a counsellor_n of_o king_n henry_n a_o contriver_n of_o the_o oath_n a_o propugner_n of_o the_o king_n supremacy_n both_o in_o print_n and_o in_o his_o sermon_n and_o a_o persecutor_n of_o they_o who_o oppose_v it_o for_o a_o preacher_n to_o preach_v against_o his_o own_o conscience_n come_v near_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o have_v reason_n to_o say_v he_o be_v constrain_v both_o to_o hide_v his_o own_o shame_n and_o to_o flatter_v the_o pope_n after_o his_o revolt_n who_o he_o have_v so_o much_o oppose_v especial_o in_o the_o day_n of_o queen_n marie_n otherwise_o he_o have_v miss_v the_o chancellership_n of_o england_n and_o it_o may_v be_v have_v suffer_v as_o a_o schismatic_a yet_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o he_o faith_n that_o king_n henry_n have_v a_o purpose_n to_o resign_v the_o supremacy_n when_o the_o tumult_n be_v in_o the_o north_n and_o that_o he_o be_v employ_v to_o the_o emperor_n to_o desire_v he_o to_o be_v a_o mediator_n to_o the_o pope_n about_o it_o all_o this_o may_v have_v be_v and_o yet_o no_o intention_n of_o reconciliation_n great_a prince_n many_o time_n look_v one_o way_n and_o row_v another_o and_o if_o a_o overture_n or_o a_o empty_a pretence_n will_v serve_v to_o quash_n a_o rebellion_n or_o prevent_v a_o foreign_a war_n will_v make_v no_o scruple_n to_o use_v it_o but_o upon_o bishop_n gardiner_n credit_n in_o this_o cause_n we_o can_v believe_v it_o this_o be_v one_o of_o they_o who_o write_v that_o menace_a letter_n to_o the_o pope_n just_a before_o the_o reformation_n that_o if_o he_o do_v not_o hear_v they_o 305._o certe_fw-la interpretabimur_fw-la nostri_fw-la nobis_fw-la curam_fw-la esse_fw-la relictam_fw-la ut_fw-la aliunde_fw-la nobis_fw-la remedia_fw-la conquiramus_fw-la they_o will_v certain_o interpret_v it_o that_o they_o be_v leave_v to_o themselves_o to_o take_v care_n of_o themselves_o to_o seek_v their_o remedy_n from_o elsewhere_o this_o be_v a_o fair_a intimation_n and_o they_o be_v as_o good_a as_o their_o word_n this_o be_v the_o man_n who_o write_v the_o book_n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la obedientia_fw-la downright_a for_o the_o king_n supremacy_n against_o the_o pope_n last_o this_o be_v who_o publish_v to_o the_o world_n that_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n with_o we_o be_v agree_v upon_o this_o point_n with_o most_o stead_n fast_o consent_v that_o no_o manner_n of_o person_n breed_v or_o bring_v up_o in_o england_n have_v aught_o to_o do_v with_o rome_n it_o have_v be_v strange_a indeed_o that_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n shall_v be_v unanimous_a in_o the_o point_n and_o the_o king_n alone_o go_v against_o his_o conscience_n his_o late_a witness_n nicholas_n sanders_n be_v just_a such_o another_o who_o book_n de_fw-fr schismate_fw-la be_v brim_n full_a of_o virulent_a slander_n and_o prodigious_a fiction_n against_o king_n henry_n he_o feign_v that_o when_o his_o death_n do_v draw_v nigh_o he_o begin_v to_o deal_v private_o with_o some_o bishop_n of_o the_o way_n how_o he_o may_v be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a testimony_n he_o produce_v none_o but_o his_o own_o authority_n they_o who_o will_v not_o believe_v it_o may_v choose_v but_o that_o which_o follow_v spoil_v the_o credit_n of_o his_o relation_n that_o one_o of_o the_o bishop_n be_v doubtful_a whether_o this_o may_v not_o be_v a_o trap_n to_o catch_v he_o answer_v that_o the_o king_n be_v wise_a than_o all_o man_n that_o he_o have_v cast_v off_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n by_o divine_a inspiration_n divino_fw-la and_o have_v nothing_o now_o to_o fear_v that_o a_o king_n shall_v be_v lay_v snare_n to_o catch_v his_o bishop_n apprepinquante_fw-la hora_fw-la mortis_fw-la when_o the_o very_a hour_n of_o his_o death_n be_v draw_v near_o 102._o and_o that_o a_o bishop_n shall_v flatter_v a_o die_a man_n so_o abominable_o against_o his_o conscience_n as_o he_o make_v this_o to_o be_v be_v not_o credible_a but_o there_o be_v a_o three_o author_n allege_v by_o other_o who_o deserve_v more_o credit_n 398._o that_o it_o be_v but_o the_o come_n two_o day_n short_a of_o a_o post_n to_o rome_n which_o hinder_v that_o the_o reconcilement_n be_v not_o actual_o make_v but_o here_o be_v a_o double_a mistake_n first_o in_o the_o time_n this_o be_v in_o the_o year_n 1533._o before_o the_o separation_n be_v make_v currente_a rota_n some_o intimation_n have_v be_v give_v of_o what_o be_v intend_v but_o the_o bell_n be_v not_o then_o ring_v out_o certain_o the_o breach_n must_v go_v before_o the_o reconcilement_n in_o order_n of_o time_n second_o in_o the_o subject_a this_o treaty_n be_v not_o about_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n over_o the_o english_a church_n but_o about_o the_o divorce_n of_o king_n henry_n and_o queen_n katherine_n the_o word_n be_v these_o that_o if_o the_o pope_n will_v supersede_n from_o execute_v his_o sentence_n until_o he_o the_o king_n have_v indifferent_a judge_n who_o may_v hear_v the_o business_n he_o will_v also_o supersede_n of_o what_o he_o be_v deliberate_v to_o do_v in_o withdraw_v his_o obedience_n from_o the_o roman_a see_n the_o bishop_n of_o paris_n procure_v this_o proposition_n from_o the_o king_n and_o deliver_v it_o at_o rome_n it_o be_v not_o accept_v the_o king_n answer_n come_v not_o within_o the_o time_n limit_v thereupon_o the_o pope_n publish_v his_o sentence_n and_o the_o separation_n follow_v so_o this_o be_v about_o the_o change_n of_o a_o wife_n not_o of_o religion_n before_o either_o king_n henrys_n substraction_n of_o obedience_n or_o the_o pope_n fulmination_n in_o the_o next_o place_n he_o distinguish_v between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o papacy_n acknowledge_v that_o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a in_o some_o case_n to_o subtract_v obedience_n from_o the_o pope_n but_o in_o no_o case_n from_o the_o papacy_n which_o he_o presume_v but_o do_v not_o prove_v to_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n whereas_o protestant_n say_v he_o for_o the_o fault_n of_o some_o pope_n have_v separate_v themselves_o both_o from_o pope_n papacy_n and_o roman_a church_n and_o here_o again_o he_o fall_v upon_o his_o former_a needless_a theme_n that_o personal_a fault_n be_v no_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o a_o revolt_n from_o a_o good_a institution_n if_o he_o have_v be_v please_v to_o observe_v it_o i_o take_v away_o this_o distinction_n before_o it_o be_v make_v 128._o show_v that_o the_o personal_a fault_n of_o pope_n or_o their_o minister_n ought_v not_o to_o reflect_v upon_o any_o but_o the_o person_n guilty_a but_o faulty_a principle_n in_o doctrine_n or_o discipline_n do_v warrant_v a_o more_o permanent_a separation_n even_o until_o they_o be_v reform_v itself_o i_o do_v acknowledge_v the_o distinction_n of_o pope_n papacy_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o i_o deny_v that_o we_o have_v separate_v from_o any_o one_o of_o they_o for_o the_o fault_n of_o another_o as_o the_o pope_n may_v have_v his_o proper_a fault_n so_o may_v the_o papacy_n so_o may_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o have_v separate_v ourselves_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n only_o in_o those_o thing_n wherein_o she_o have_v first_o separate_v herself_o from_o the_o ancient_a roman_a church_n in_o all_o other_o thing_n we_o maintain_v communion_n with_o she_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o yield_v the_o pope_n all_o that_o respect_n which_o be_v due_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o a_o apostolical_a church_n and_o whatsoever_o external_a honour_n the_o father_n do_v think_v fit_a to_o cast_v upon_o that_o see_v if_o he_o
other_o church_n and_o not_o rome_n st._n peter_n may_v have_v continue_v bishop_n of_o antioch_n until_o his_o death_n and_o then_o antioch_n have_v still_o be_v the_o mistress_n and_o foundation_n of_o all_o other_o church_n he_o may_v have_v be_v neither_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n nor_o rome_n and_o then_o the_o other_o church_n have_v want_v such_o a_o hereditary_a mistress_n all_o this_o be_v confess_v by_o bellarmine_n 12._o do_v paul_n the_o nine_o make_v we_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n of_o so_o great_a contingency_n that_o be_v not_o of_o perpetual_a necessity_n how_o can_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o all_o christian_n in_o all_o place_n when_o there_o have_v be_v so_o many_o christian_a church_n ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o never_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o do_v with_o rome_n nor_o scarce_o ever_o hear_v of_o the_o name_n of_o rome_n if_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o master_n of_o all_o christian_n he_o be_v but_o a_o young_a master_n for_o we_o find_v no_o such_o expression_n in_o all_o the_o primitive_a time_n why_o be_v the_o ancient_a bishop_n so_o gross_o over-seen_a to_o style_v he_o their_o brother_n their_o colleague_n their_o fellow_n who_o be_v their_o master_n it_o may_v be_v modesty_n in_o the_o pope_n to_o use_v such_o familiar_a expression_n as_o a_o general_n call_v all_o his_o army_n fellow_n soldier_n but_o it_o be_v never_o hear_v that_o a_o private_a colonel_n or_o captain_n do_v call_v his_o general_n fellow_n soldier_n or_o a_o servant_n call_v his_o master_n fellow_n servant_n or_o a_o ordinary_a clerk_n call_v his_o b●shop_n his_o brother_n 5.1_o st._n peter_n write_v himself_o a_o fellow_n elder_n not_o a_o master_n if_o st._n paul_n have_v know_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v be_v the_o mistress_n and_o foundation_n of_o all_o other_o church_n he_o will_v have_v give_v they_o their_o due_a title_n and_o the_o whole_a scripture_n have_v not_o be_v so_o silent_a in_o so_o necessary_a a_o point_n but_o he_o say_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v neither_o against_o the_o two_o creed_n nor_o the_o fi●st_n four_o general_a counsel_n intimate_v thereby_o that_o it_o exclude_v none_o from_o salvation_n and_o consequent_o be_v no_o sufficient_a cause_n of_o separation_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o it_o be_v against_o the_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n if_o this_o be_v a_o proper_a place_n for_o the_o discussion_n of_o it_o i_o answer_v second_o that_o though_o it_o be_v not_o opposite_a to_o the_o creed_n or_o the_o first_o four_o general_a counsel_n yet_o if_o it_o be_v not_o virtual_o include_v in_o the_o creed_n be_v as_o it_o be_v by_o they_o obtrude_v upon_o all_o christian_n as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n or_o a_o necessary_a part_n of_o save_a truth_n extra_fw-la quam_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la salus_fw-la without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n it_o become_v a_o just_a and_o sufficient_a cause_n of_o separation_n to_o all_o those_o upon_o who_o it_o be_v so_o obtrude_v of_o this_o more_o in_o the_o next_o argument_n 3_o my_o second_o argument_n may_v be_v thus_o reduce_v that_o court_n which_o obtrude_v new_o coin_a article_n of_o faith_n they_o such_o as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n transubstantiation_n purgatory_n invocation_n of_o saint_n worship_v of_o image_n indulgence_n and_o especial_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n upon_o the_o christian_a world_n as_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o necessary_a condition_n of_o catholic_n communion_n and_o excommunicate_v and_o anathematize_v above_o three_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n for_o not_o admit_v they_o be_v fearful_o schismatical_a but_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n do_v all_o this_o that_o these_o be_v no_o old_a article_n appear_v by_o all_o the_o ancient_a creed_n of_o the_o church_n wherein_o they_o be_v neither_o explicitly_a nor_o virtual_o comprehend_v that_o they_o be_v make_v new_a article_n by_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n 1564._o appear_v by_o the_o bull_n of_o pius_n the_o four_o wherein_o they_o be_v add_v to_o the_o old_a creed_n ut_fw-la unius_fw-la &_o ejusdem_fw-la fidei_fw-la professio_fw-la uniformiter_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la exhibeatur_fw-la that_o the_o profession_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o faith_n may_v be_v declare_v uniform_o by_o all_o and_o one_o certain_a form_n thereof_o be_v make_v know_v to_o all_o and_o last_o that_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n have_v solemn_o excommunicate_v with_o the_o great_a excommunication_n and_o anathematise_v and_o exclude_v so_o far_o as_o lie_v in_o their_o power_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o christ_n all_o the_o grecian_a russian_a armenian_a abyssen_n and_o reform_a church_n be_v three_o time_n more_o in_o number_n then_o themselves_o for_o not_o receive_v these_o new_a article_n or_o some_o of_o they_o and_o especial_o for_o not_o acknowledge_v the_o sovereign_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n and_o his_o court_n appear_v undeniable_o by_o the_o famous_a bull_n of_o pius_n the_o five_o 1569._o call_v bulla_n caenae_fw-la because_o it_o be_v read_v in_o die_v caenae_fw-la domini_fw-la or_o upon_o thursday_n before_o easter_n in_o way_n of_o answer_n to_o this_o he_o ask_v how_o this_o be_v any_o cause_n of_o king_n henry_n revolt_n i_o reply_v first_o that_o though_o henry_n the_o eight_o have_v not_o think_v of_o this_o &_o so_o it_o have_v not_o be_v causa_fw-la procreans_fw-la a_o productive_a cause_n of_o the_o separation_n yet_o to_o we_o it_o be_v a_o most_o just_a cause_n to_o condemn_v they_o of_o schism_n second_o the_o revolt_n or_o more_o true_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o make_v by_o henry_n the_o eight_o or_o the_o english_a church_n but_o by_o the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n who_o excommunicate_v he_o and_o his_o kingdom_n for_o not_o endure_v their_o encroachment_n and_o usurpation_n he_o and_o his_o kingdom_n be_v passive_a in_o it_o only_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n be_v double_o active_a first_o in_o revolt_n from_o the_o right_a discipline_n of_o their_o predecessor_n and_o second_o in_o exclude_v the_o party_n wrong_v from_o their_o communion_n but_o in_o the_o separation_n of_o england_n from_o the_o oppession_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n i_o confess_v that_o henry_n the_o eight_o and_o the_o kingdom_n be_v active_a and_o this_o very_a ground_n to_o avoid_v the_o tyranny_n separation_n and_o ambition_n and_o avarice_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n be_v the_o chief_a impulsive_a cause_n both_o to_o the_o english_a and_o eastern_a christian_n for_o though_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v not_o obtrude_v upon_o they_o in_o form_n of_o a_o creed_n yet_o it_o be_v obtrude_v upon_o they_o as_o a_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n if_o henry_n the_o eight_o have_v any_o other_o private_a sinist_a ground_n know_v only_o to_o himself_o they_o do_v not_o render_v the_o reformation_n one_o jod_n the_o worse_o in_o itself_o but_o only_o prove_v that_o he_o proceed_v not_o upright_o which_o concern_v he_o not_o we_o second_o he_o answer_v that_o though_o they_o profess_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v under_o the_o pope_n as_o vicar_n of_o christ_n yet_o they_o say_v not_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a necessitate_v medii_fw-la so_o as_o none_o can_v be_v save_v who_o do_v not_o actual_o believe_v it_o if_o all_o this_o be_v true_a yet_o it_o be_v too_o much_o to_o oblige_v the_o whole_a christian_a world_n to_o submit_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n but_o i_o fear_v that_o pope_n pius_n by_o his_o bull_n and_o all_o they_o by_o their_o swear_n in_o obedience_n thereunto_o do_v make_v it_o to_o be_v necessary_a necessitate_v medii_fw-la so_o as_o none_o can_v be_v save_v who_o do_v not_o actual_o believe_v it_o and_o then_o there_o be_v little_a hope_n of_o salvation_n throughout_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basile_n out_o of_o the_o pope_n own_o court_n which_o be_v then_o the_o only_a noah_n ark_n the_o word_n of_o their_o oath_n be_v these_o hanc_fw-la veram_fw-la catholicam_fw-la fidem_fw-la extra_fw-la quam_fw-la nemo_fw-la salvus_fw-la esse_fw-la potest_fw-la etc._n etc._n this_o true_a catholic_a faith_n without_o which_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v which_o i_o profess_v free_o and_o hold_v true_o in_o present_a i_o do_v promise_n 4._o vow_v and_o swear_v by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n to_o retain_v and_o confess_v perfect_a and_o inviolated_a most_o constant_o to_o my_o last_o gasp_n and_o will_v take_v care_n so_o far_o as_o in_o i_o lie_v to_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v teach_v and_o preach_v to_o all_o that_o shall_v be_v commit_v to_o my_o charge_n if_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a necessitate_v medii_fw-la some_o
which_o continue_v in_o communion_n with_o it_o be_v the_o only_a church_n which_o have_v true_a doctrine_n in_o virtue_n of_o the_o first_o principle_n above_o mention_v and_o the_o right_a government_n in_o virtue_n of_o the_o second_o and_o consequent_o be_v the_o entire_a catholic_n or_o universal_a church_n of_o christian_n all_o other_o by_o misbelief_n or_o schism_n be_v exclude_v our_o answer_n be_v ready_a that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n have_v sophisticated_a the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n by_o their_o supplementall_a article_n and_o erroneous_a addition_n contrary_a to_o the_o first_o principle_n and_o have_v introduce_v into_o the_o church_n a_o tyrannical_a and_o unlawful_a government_n contrary_a to_o the_o second_o principle_n and_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v the_o entire_a catholic_n church_n that_o by_o they_o both_o they_o be_v convict_v to_o have_v make_v themselves_o guilty_a of_o supertio_fw-la n_o and_o schism_n and_o last_o where_o he_o say_v that_o my_o only_a way_n to_o clear_v our_o church_n from_o schism_n be_v either_o by_o disprove_v the_o former_a to_o be_v the_o necessary_a rule_n of_o unity_n in_o faith_n or_o the_o latter_a the_o necessary_a bond_n of_o government_n he_o be_v double_o mistake_v first_o we_o be_v the_o person_n accuse_v our_o plea_n be_v negative_a or_o not_o guilty_a so_o the_o proof_n lie_v not_o upon_o we_o but_o upon_o he_o to_o make_v good_a his_o accusation_n by_o prove_v we_o schismatic_n second_o if_o the_o proof_n do_v rest_n upon_o our_o side_n we_o do_v not_o approve_v of●his_v advi●e_n it_o be_v not_o we_o who_o have_v alter_v the_o doctrine_n or_o discipline_n which_o christ_n leave_v to_o his_o church_n by_o our_o subtraction_n but_o they_o by_o their_o addition_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o christ_n legacy_n ought_v to_o be_v preserve_v inviolable_a but_o we_o deny_v that_o christ_n bequeath_v spiritual_a monarchy_n over_o his_o church_n to_o s._n peter_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v s._n peter_n heir_n by_o christ_n ordination_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o constant_a belief_n of_o the_o catholic_n world_n at_o any_o time_n this_o be_v his_o province_n let_v he_o either_o make_v this_o good_a or_o hold_v his_o peace_n sect._n 2._o so_o his_o prologue_n be_v end_v now_o we_o come_v to_o his_o animadversion_n upon_o my_o argument_n my_o first_o ground_n be_v because_o not_o protestant_n but_o roman_a catholic_n themselves_o do_v make_v the_o first_o separation_n to_o which_o his_o first_o answer_n be_v if_o it_o be_v so_o how_o do_v that_o acquit_v we_o since_o continuance_n in_o a_o breach_n of_o this_o nature_n be_v as_o culpable_a as_o the_o beginning_n many_o way_n first_o it_o be_v a_o violent_a presumption_n of_o their_o guilt_n and_o our_o innocence_n when_o their_o best_a friend_n and_o best_a able_a to_o judge_v who_o preach_v for_o they_o and_o write_v for_o they_o who_o act_v for_o they_o and_o suffer_v for_o they_o who_o in_o all_o other_o thing_n be_v great_a zelo●s_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n and_o persecute_v the_o poor_a protestant_n with_o fire_n and_o faggot_n do_v yet_o condemn_v th●m_n and_o justify_v this_o separation_n second_o though_o it_o do_v not_o always_o excuse_v a_o t●to_n from_o all_o guilt_n and_o punishment_n to_o be_v mislead_v by_o other_o into_o error_n if_o the_o blind_a llead_v the_o blind_a both_o fall_n into_o the_o ditch_n yet_o it_o do_v always_o excuse_v a_o tanto_fw-it it_o lessen_v the_o sin_n and_o extenuate_v the_o guilt_n person_n mislead_v by_o the_o example_n and_o authority_n of_o other_o be_v not_o so_o cuipable_a as_o the_o first_o author_n and_o ringleader_n in_o schism_n if_o this_o separation_n be_v a_o error_n in_o protestant_n the_o roman_a catholic_n do_v owe_v a_o account_n to_o god_n both_o for_o themselves_o and_o we_o do_v they_o find_v cause_n to_o turn_v the_o pope_n out_o of_o england_n as_o a_o intruder_n and_o usurper_n and_o can_v protestant_n who_o have_v no_o relation_n to_o rome_n imagine_v that_o it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o bring_v he_o in_o again_o three_o in_o this_o case_n it_o do_v acquit_v we_o not_o only_o a_o tanto_fw-la but_o a_o toto_fw-la not_o only_o from_o such_o a_o degree_n of_o guilt_n but_o from_o all_o criminus_fw-la schism_n so_o longas_fw-la we_o seek_v carefu_o after_o truth_n and_o do_v not_o violate_v the_o dictate_v of_o our_o conscience_n if_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v i_o let_v himbeleeve_v s._n austin_n he_o that_o defend_v not_o his_o false_a opinion_n with_o pertinacious_a animosity_n 161._o have_v not_o invent_v it_o himself_o but_o learn_v it_o from_o his_o err_a parent_n if_o he_o inquire_v careful_o after_o the_o truth_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o embrace_v it_o and_o to_o correct_v his_o error_n when_o he_o find_v they_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v repute_v a_o heretic_n if_o this_o be_v true_a in_o the_o case_n of_o heresy_n it_o be_v more_o true_a in_o the_o case_n of_o schism_n thus_o if_o it_o have_v be_v a_o crime_n in_o they_o you_z it_o be_v none_o in_o we_o but_o in_o truth_n it_o be_v neither_o crime_n in_o they_o nor_o we_o but_o a_o just_a and_o necessary_a duty_n second_o he_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v no_o sufficient_a proof_n that_o they_o be_v no_o protestant_n because_o they_o persecute_a protestant_n for_o protestant_n persecute_v protestant_n lutheran_n calvinist_n zwinglian_n puritan_n and_o beownist_n persecute_v one_o another_o what_o then_o be_v warham_n and_o heath_n and_o thureleby_n tunscall_n and_o stokesley_n and_o gardiner_n and_o bonner_n etc._n etc._n all_o protestant_n do_v protestant_n enjoy_v archbishopric_n and_o bishopric_n i●_n england_n and_o say_v mass_n in_o those_o day_n will_v he_o part_v so_o easy_o with_o the_o great_a patron_n and_o champion_n of_o their_o church_n and_o opposer_n of_o the_o reformation_n if_o he_o have_v wri●_n thus_o much_o while_o they_o be_v live_v they_o will_v have_v be_v very_o angry_a with_o he_o yet_o at_o the_o least_o if_o they_o be_v protestant_n let_v he_o tell_v i_o which_o of_o these_o sect_n they_o be_v of_o lutherans_n etc._n etc._n but_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o reounce_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o most_o essential_a part_n of_o our_o reformation_n and_o so_o they_o have_v in_o they_o the_o quintessence_n of_o a_o protestant_n he_o be_v mistake_v this_o part_n of_o the_o reformation_n be_v do_v to_o our_o hand_n it_o be_v their_o reformation_n not_o we_o but_o if_o he_o will_v needs_o have_v the_o kingdom_n and_o church_n of_o england_n and_o ireland_n to_o have_v be_v all_o protestant_n in_o henry_n the_o eighths_n day_n only_o for_o renounce_v the_o pope_n absolute_a universal_a monarchy_n i_o be_o well_o content_v we_o shall_v not_o lose_v by_o the_o bargain_n then_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v all_o protestant_n than_o all_o the_o grecian_a russian_a armenian_a abyssen_n christian_n be_v protestant_n at_o this_o day_n than_o we_o want_v not_o store_n of_o protestant_n even_o in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n itself_o sect._n 3_o my_o second_o ground_n say_v he_o be_v because_o in_o the_o separation_n of_o england_n from_o rome_n there_o be_v no_o new_a law_n make_v but_o only_o their_o ancient_a liberty_n vindicate_v this_o he_o be_v please_v to_o call_v notorious_o false_a &_o impudence_n itself_o because_o a_o law_n be_v make_v in_o henry_n the_o eighths_n time_n and_o a_o oath_n invent_v by_o which_o be_v give_v to_o the_o king_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o have_v all_o the_o power_n the_o pope_n do_v at_o that_o time_n possess_v in_o england_n be_v this_o the_o language_n of_o the_o roman_a school_n or_o do_v he_o think_v perhaps_o with_o his_o outcry_n and_o clamour_n as_o the_o turk_n with_o their_o alla_fw-mi alla_fw-mi to_o daunt_v we_o and_o drive_v we_o from_o our_o cause_n christian_n reader_n of_o what_o communion_n soever_o thou_o be_v be_v but_o indifferent_a and_o i_o make_v thou_o the_o judge_n where_o this_o notorious_a falsehood_n and_o impudence_n do_v rest_n between_o he_o and_o i_o i_o acknowledge_v this_o be_v the_o title_n of_o my_o four_o chapter_n that_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n of_o england_n in_o the_o separation_n from_o rome_n do_v make_v no_o now_o law_n but_o vindicate_v their_o ancient_a liberty_n it_o seem_v he_o confure_v the_o title_n without_o look_v into_o the_o chapter_n do_v i_o say_v they_o make_v no_o new_a statute_n no_o i_o cite_v all_o the_o new_a statute_n which_o they_o do_v make_v and_o particular_o this_o very_a statute_n which_o he_o mention_v here_o yet_o i_o say_v they_o make_v no_o new_a law_n because_o it_o be_v the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n before_o that_o statute_n be_v make_v the_o custom_n and_o liberty_n of_o england_n be_v the_o ancient_a and_o common_a law_n of_o the_o
assent_v to_o the_o erect_n of_o it_o and_o i_o ask_v how_o it_o be_v not_o legal_o establish_v which_o be_v establish_v by_o sovereign_a authority_n according_a to_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o convocation_n with_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o parliament_n what_o other_o legal_a establishment_n can_v there_o be_v in_o england_n by_o the_o law_n of_o england_n a_o bishop_n have_v but_o his_o single_a vote_n either_o in_o parliament_n or_o convocation_n some_o bishop_n be_v imprison_v indeed_o but_o neither_o the_o most_o nor_o the_o best_a of_o the_o english_a bishop_n whether_o for_o not_o assent_v or_o for_o other_o reason_n will_v require_v further_a proof_n than_o his_o bare_a assertion_n this_o be_v certain_a that_o every_o one_o of_o they_o have_v free_o renounce_v the_o pope_n and_o papacy_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o he_o say_v i_o shall_v have_v add_v that_o church_n which_o be_v suppress_v by_o the_o last_o parliament_n suppress_v under_o king_n charles_n why_o shall_v i_o add_v a_o notorious_a untruth_n as_o contrary_a to_o my_o conscience_n as_o to_o my_o affection_n i_o may_v have_v say_v oppress_v i_o can_v not_o say_v suppress_v the_o external_a splendour_n be_v abate_v when_o the_o barony_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o their_o vote_n in_o parliament_n be_v take_v away_o but_o the_o order_n be_v not_o extinguish_v so_o far_o from_o it_o that_o king_n charles_n himself_o suffer_v as_o a_o martyr_n for_o the_o english_a church_n if_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o it_o be_v suppress_v by_o a_o ordinance_n of_o one_o or_o both_o house_n without_o authority_n royal_a he_o can_v be_v so_o great_a a_o stranger_n in_o england_n as_o not_o to_o know_v that_o it_o be_v without_o the_o sphere_n of_o their_o activity_n yet_o he_o be_v please_v to_o style_v it_o a_o dead_a church_n dea●_n and_o i_o the_o advocate_n of_o a_o dead_a church_n even_o as_o the_o tree_n be_v dead_a in_o winter_n when_o they_o want_v their_o leaf_n or_o as_o the_o sun_n be_v set_v when_o it_o be_v behind_o a_o cloud_n or_o as_o the_o gold_n be_v destroy_v when_o it_o be_v melt_v in_o the_o furnace_n when_o i_o see_v a_o seed_n cast_v into_o the_o ground_n i_o do_v not_o ask_v where_o be_v the_o greeness_n of_o the_o leaf_n where_o be_v the_o beauty_n of_o the_o flower_n where_o be_v the_o sweetness_n of_o the_o fruit_n but_o i_o expect_v all_o these_o in_o their_o due_a season_n stay_v a_o while_n and_o behold_v the_o catastrophe_n the_o rain_n be_v fall_v the_o wind_n have_v blow_v and_o the_o flood_n have_v beaton_n upon_o their_o church_n but_o it_o be_v not_o fall_v for_o it_o be_v found_v upon_o a_o rock_n the_o light_n be_v under_o a_o bushel_n but_o it_o be_v not_o extinguish_v and_o if_o god_n in_o justice_n shall_v think_v fit_a to_o remove_v our_o candlestick_n yet_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v not_o dead_a while_o the_o catholic_n church_n survive_v persecution_n last_o he_o deny_v that_o the_o english_a church_n be_v under_o persecution_n and_o though_o some_o of_o the_o church_n do_v suffer_v yet_o it_o be_v not_o for_o religion_n but_o matter_n of_o state_n what_o can_v a_o man_n expect_v in_o knotty_a question_n from_o they_o who_o be_v so_o much_o transport_v with_o prejudice_n as_o to_o deny_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v obvious_a to_o every_o eye_n if_o it_o be_v but_o some_o that_o have_v suffer_v it_o be_v such_o a_o some_o as_o their_o church_n can_v never_o show_v wherein_o he_o that_o desire_v to_o be_v more_o particular_o inform_v may_v read_v the_o martyrology_n of_o london_n or_o the_o list_n of_o the_o university_n and_o from_o that_o paw_n guess_v at_o the_o proportion_n of_o the_o lion_n but_o perhaps_o all_o this_o be_v for_o matter_n of_o state_n no_o our_o church_n be_v not_o demolish_v upon_o pretence_n of_o matter_n of_o state_n nor_o our_o ecclesiastical_a revenue_n expose_v to_o sale_n for_o matter_n of_o state_n the_o refusal_n of_o a_o schismatical_a covenant_n be_v no_o matter_n of_o state_n how_o many_o of_o the_o orthodox_n clergy_n without_o pretence_n of_o any_o other_o delinquency_n have_v be_v beggar_a how_o many_o necessitate_a to_o turn_v mechanic_n or_o day-laborer_n how_o many_o starve_a how_o many_o have_v have_v their_o heart_n break_v how_o many_o have_v be_v imprison_v how_o many_o banish_v from_o their_o native_a soil_n and_o drive_v as_o vagabond_n into_o the_o merciless_a world_n no_o man_n be_v so_o blind_a as_o he_o that_o will_v not_o see_v his_o ten_o section_n be_v a_o summary_n or_o repetition_n of_o what_o he_o have_v already_o say_v 10._o wherein_o i_o find_v nothing_o of_o weight_n that_o be_v new_a but_o only_o one_o authority_n out_o of_o st._n austin_n that_o catholic_n be_v every_o where_o and_o heretic_n every_o where_o but_o catholic_n be_v the_o same_o every_o where_o and_o heretic_n different_a every_o where_o if_o by_o catholic_n he_o understand_v roman_a catholic_n they_o be_v not_o every_o where_o not_o in_o russia_n nor_o in_o aethiopia_n and_o except_v some_o handful_n for_o the_o most_o part_n upon_o toleration_n not_o in_o any_o of_o the_o eastern_a church_n the_o word_n of_o saint_n austin_n be_v these_o ubicunque_fw-la sunt_fw-la isti_fw-la illic_fw-la catholica_fw-la 61._o sicut_fw-la in_o africa_n ubi_fw-la &_o vos_fw-la non_fw-la autem_fw-la ubicunque_fw-la catholica_fw-la est_fw-la aut_fw-la vos_fw-la istis_fw-la aut_fw-la heresis_fw-la quaelibet_fw-la earum_fw-la wheresoever_o they_o be_v there_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n as_o in_o africa_n where_o you_o be_v but_o wheresoever_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v you_o be_v not_o nor_o any_o of_o those_o heresy_n st._n augustine_n scope_n be_v to_o show_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v more_o diffuse_v or_o rather_o universal_a than_o any_o sect_n or_o all_o sect_n put_v together_o if_o you_o please_v let_v this_o be_v the_o touchstone_n between_o you_o and_o we_o but_o you_o will_v say_v that_o you_o be_v unite_v every_o where_o and_o we_o be_v different_a every_o where_o nothing_o less_o you_o be_v unite_v in_o one_o pretend_a head_n which_o some_o of_o you_o acknowledge_v more_o some_o less_o we_o be_v unite_v in_o the_o same_o creed_n the_o same_o sacrament_n and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o same_o discipline_n beside_o of_o who_o do_v st._n austin_n speak_v in_o that_o place_n of_o the_o novatian_o arrian_n patripassian_o valentinian_o patrician_n apellite_n marcionite_n ophites_n all_o which_o condemn_v all_o other_o but_o themselves_o and_o thereby_o do_v separate_v themselves_o schismatical_o from_o the_o catholic_n church_n as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v that_o you_o do_v our_o case_n be_v quite_o contrary_a we_o reform_v ourselves_o but_o condemn_v no_o other_o chap._n 3._o whether_o protestant_n be_v author_n of_o the_o separation_n from_o rome_n schism_n we_o be_v now_o come_v from_o state_v the_o question_n to_o proof_n where_o we_o shall_v soon_o see_v how_o r._n c._n will_v acquit_v himself_o of_o the_o province_n which_o he_o have_v undertake_v to_o show_v that_o protestant_n be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o the_o separation_n from_o rome_n but_o roman_a catholic_n i_o produce_v first_o the_o solemn_a unanimous_a resolution_n of_o our_o university_n in_o the_o point_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o great_a jurisdiction_n within_o england_n confer_v upon_o he_o by_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n than_o any_o other_o foreign_a bishop_n second_o the_o decree_n of_o two_o of_o our_o national_a synod_n three_o six_o or_o seven_o statute_n or_o act_n of_o parliament_n four_o the_o attestation_n of_o the_o prime_a roman_n catholic_n bishop_n and_o clergy_n in_o their_o print_a book_n in_o their_o epistle_n in_o their_o sermon_n in_o their_o speech_n in_o their_o institution_n five_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o england_n testify_v by_o bishop_n gardiner_n and_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o ireland_n prove_v out_o of_o the_o council_n book_n last_o the_o pope_n own_o book_n wherein_o he_o interdict_v and_o excommunicate_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o england_n before_o the_o reformation_n make_v by_o protestant_n so_o as_o apparent_o we_o be_v chase_v away_o from_o they_o hear_v the_o judgement_n of_o a_o stranger_n this_o year_n the_o pope_n break_v the_o wise_a patience_n or_o rather_o dissimulation_n which_o for_o four_o year_n together_o he_o have_v use_v towards_o england_n 1538._o and_o send_v against_o the_o king_n a_o terrible_a thunder_a bull_n such_o as_o never_o be_v use_v by_o his_o predecessor_n nor_o imitate_v by_o his_o successor_n it_o will_v cost_v he_o some_o tug_v to_o break_v such_o a_o six-fold_n cord_n as_o this_o be_v what_o do_v he_o answer_v to_o all_o this_o not_o one_o word_n and_o so_o i_o take_v my_o first_o ground_n pro_fw-la confess_v that_o protestant_n be_v not_o author_n of_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o english_a
factious_a person_n but_o by_o two_o or_o three_o king_n successive_o and_o by_o theodore_n the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n a_o roman_a with_o the_o flower_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o whole_a council_n of_o the_o english_a he_o proceed_v 4._o they_o never_o dislike_v that_o profession_n of_o saint_n augustine_n fellow_n that_o the_o see_v apostolic_a have_v send_v they_o to_o preach_v in_o britanny_n as_o she_o be_v accustom_v to_o do_v in_o all_o the_o world_n first_o why_o shall_v they_o dislike_v it_o they_o have_v no_o reason_n for_o it_o no_o good_a christian_n can_v dislike_v the_o husbandman_n sow_v of_o wheat_n but_o every_o good_a christian_n do_v dislike_v the_o envious_a man_n supersemination_n or_o sow_v of_o tare_n above_o the_o wheat_n or_o if_o there_o have_v be_v reason_n how_o can_v they_o dislike_v that_o which_o in_o probability_n they_o do_v not_o know_v the_o letter_n out_o of_o which_o these_o word_n be_v cite_v be_v not_o write_v to_o the_o english_a king_n but_o to_o the_o scotish_n bishop_n by_o laurentius_n successor_n to_o austin_n in_o the_o see_v of_o canterbury_n and_o melitus_n of_o london_n and_o justus_n of_o rotchester_n which_o three_o be_v all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n that_o be_v at_o that_o day_n in_o britain_n but_o if_o perchance_o he_o imagine_v that_o the_o pope_n send_v preacher_n into_o britain_n do_v either_o argue_v a_o ancient_a or_o acquire_v a_o subsequent_a jurisdiction_n over_o britain_n he_o err_v double_o first_o they_o do_v nothing_o without_o the_o king_n licence_n for_o matter_n of_o fact_n they_o produce_v no_o papal_a mandate_n which_o have_v be_v in_o vain_a to_o a_o pagan_a king_n at_o their_o first_o arrival_n the_o king_n command_v they_o to_o abide_v in_o the_o isle_n of_o thanet_n until_o his_o further_a pleasure_n be_v know_v they_o do_v so_o afterward_o they_o be_v call_v in_o by_o his_o command_n 25._o he_o give_v they_o a_o express_a licence_n to_o preach_v to_o his_o subject_n and_o after_o his_o own_o conversion_n majorem_fw-la praedicandi_fw-la licentiam_fw-la a_o further_a and_o large_a licence_n so_o the_o conversion_n of_o kent_n be_v by_o the_o pope_n endeavoure_v and_o the_o king_n authority_n second_o for_o matter_n of_o right_n conversion_n give_v no_o just_a title_n to_o jurisdiction_n 11.22_o how_o many_o country_n have_v be_v convert_v to_o the_o christian_a faith_n by_o the_o britan_n and_o english_a over_o which_o they_o never_o pretend_v any_o authority_n it_o follow_v they_o never_o dislike_v that_o saint_n gregory_n shall_v subject_v all_o the_o priest_n of_o britain_n under_o saint_n austin_n and_o give_v he_o power_n to_o erect_v two_o archiepiscopall_a see_v and_o twelve_o episcopal_a see_v under_o each_o of_o they_o 29._o who_o can_v ethelbert_n be_v himself_o a_o novice_n in_o christianity_n better_a trust_n with_o the_o dispose_n of_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n in_o his_o kingdom_n than_o those_o who_o have_v be_v his_o converter_n but_o either_o saint_n gregory_n in_o his_o project_n or_o rather_o austin_n in_o his_o information_n do_v mighty_o over-shoot_a themselves_o for_o the_o twenty_o part_n of_o britain_n be_v not_o in_o ethelbert_n power_n and_o all_o the_o other_o saxon_a king_n be_v pagan_n at_o that_o time_n we_o have_v see_v that_o after_o the_o death_n of_o austin_n and_o gregory_n there_o be_v still_o but_o one_o archbishop_n and_o two_o bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n throughout_o the_o britannic_a island_n the_o british_a and_o scotish_n bishop_n be_v many_o but_o they_o renounce_v all_o communion_n with_o rome_n the_o british_a bishop_n profess_v plain_o to_o austin_n himself_o in_o their_o synod_n that_o they_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o their_o archbishop_n 2._o and_o the_o scotish_n bishop_n do_v so_o much_o abhor_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n that_o as_o themselves_o complain_v dagamus_n one_o of_o the_o scotish_n bishop_n refuse_v to_o eat_v with_o they_o or_o to_o lodge_v with_o they_o in_o the_o same_o inn_n 4._o and_o yet_o he_o tell_v we_o in_o great_a earnest_n that_o they_o never_o dislike_v it_o he_o add_v melit_fw-la they_o never_o dislike_v that_o saint_n melit_fw-la shall_v bring_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o roman_a synod_n to_o be_v observe_v of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n it_o may_v be_v so_o but_o whether_o it_o be_v so_o or_o not_o whether_o they_o like_v they_o or_o dislike_v they_o whether_o they_o receive_v they_o or_o reject_v they_o 4._o venerable_a bede_n who_o be_v his_o author_n speak_v not_o a_o word_n this_o be_v not_o prove_v but_o presume_v and_o why_o may_v they_o not_o receive_v they_o if_o they_o find_v they_o to_o be_v equal_a and_o beneficial_a non_fw-la propter_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la legislatoris_fw-la sed_fw-la propter_fw-la aequitatem_fw-la legis_fw-la not_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a synod_n but_o for_o the_o equity_n of_o their_o decree_n and_o what_o be_v their_o decree_n ibidem_fw-la ordinationes_fw-la de_fw-la vita_fw-la &_o quiet_a monachorum_fw-la order_n for_o the_o good_a conversation_n and_o quiet_a of_o monk_n a_o matter_n of_o no_o great_a importance_n but_o great_a or_o small_a the_o decree_n of_o the_o roman_a synod_n be_v of_o no_o force_n in_o england_n unless_o they_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n and_o if_o they_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n than_o they_o be_v naturalise_v and_o make_v the_o law_n of_o england_n not_o of_o pope_n boniface_n a_o usurp_a and_o if_o we_o may_v trust_v saint_n gregory_n his_o predecessor_n a_o antichristian_a prelate_n rome_n they_o willing_o admit_v a_o bishop_n of_o canterbury_n send_v to_o they_o and_o choose_v by_o the_o pope_n why_o shall_v they_o not_o admit_v he_o see_v it_o be_v their_o own_o desire_n and_o request_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o great_a scarcity_n of_o scholar_n then_o in_o england_n to_o send_v they_o one_o as_o appear_z by_o the_o very_a letter_n of_o vitalianus_n hominem_fw-la denique_fw-la docibilem_fw-la &_o in_fw-la omnibus_fw-la ornatum_fw-la antistitem_fw-la secundum_fw-la vestrorum_fw-la scriptorum_fw-la tenorem_fw-la minime_fw-la valuimus_fw-la nunc_fw-la reperire_fw-la 1._o we_o can_v not_o find_v for_o the_o present_a such_o a_o complete_a prelate_n as_o your_o letter_n require_v and_o by_o the_o reception_n of_o the_o king_n qu●d_fw-la cum_fw-la nuncii_fw-la certò_fw-la narrassent_fw-la regi_fw-la egberto_n adesse_fw-la episcopum_fw-la quem_fw-la petierant_fw-la a_o romano_n antistite_fw-la when_o king_n egbert_n have_v certain_a notice_n that_o the_o bishop_n theodore_n be_v come_v who_o they_o have_v desire_v of_o the_o roman_a prelate_n so_o he_o be_v not_o obtrude_v upon_o they_o against_o their_o will_n which_o be_v the_o case_n of_o patronage_n between_o we_o and_o they_o heaven_n they_o acknowledge_v that_o saint_n peter_n be_v the_o special_a porter_n of_o heaven_n who_o they_o will_v obey_v in_o all_o thing_n i_o understand_v not_o why_o he_o urge_v this_o except_o it_o be_v to_o expose_v the_o simplicity_n of_o those_o time_n to_o derision_n the_o case_n be_v this_o there_o be_v a_o disputation_n between_o coleman_n and_o wilfrid_n about_o the_o observation_n of_o easter_n coleman_n plead_v a_o tradition_n from_o saint_n john_n upon_o who_o bosom_n christ_n lean_v deliver_v to_o they_o by_o columba_n their_o first_o converter_n wilfrid_n plead_v a_o different_a tradition_n from_o st._n peter_n to_o who_o christ_n give_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o king_n demand_v whether_o that_o which_o be_v say_v of_o saint_n peter_n be_v true_a they_o acknowledge_v it_o be_v and_o whether_o any_o thing_n of_o like_a nature_n be_v say_v to_o saint_n columb_n they_o say_v no._n thereupon_o the_o king_n conclude_v hic_fw-la est_fw-la ostiarius_fw-la ille_fw-la cui_fw-la ego_fw-la contradicere_fw-la nolo_fw-la etc._n etc._n ne_fw-fr forte_fw-fr i_o adveniente_fw-la ad_fw-la fores_fw-la regni_fw-la coelorum_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la quireseret_fw-la averso_fw-la illo_fw-la qui_fw-la clave_n tenere_fw-la probatur_fw-la this_o be_v the_o porter_n who_o i_o will_v not_o contradict_v lest_o peradventure_o when_o i_o come_v to_o the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n there_o be_v none_o to_o open_v unto_o i_o have_v make_v he_o averse_a to_o i_o who_o be_v prove_v to_o keep_v the_o key_n no_o man_n can_v be_v so_o simple_a as_o to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v gate_n and_o key_n and_o porter_n in_o heaven_n it_o be_v but_o a_o poor_a office_n for_o saint_n peter_n to_o sit_v porter_n at_o the_o gate_n while_o the_o rest_n be_v feast_v within_o at_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lamb._n the_o key_n be_v give_v to_o saint_n john_n as_o much_o as_o to_o saint_n peter_n they_o public_o engrave_v in_o the_o front_n of_o their_o church_n paul_n that_o saint_n peter_n be_v high_a in_o degree_n than_o saint_n paul_n let_v they_o place_n st._n peter_n as_o high_a as_o they_o please_v
if_o it_o have_v be_v a_o solemn_a interdict_v in_o those_o day_n and_o this_o nameless_a author_n call_v it_o but_o a_o epistle_n moreover_o he_o tell_v we_o of_o honourable_a present_n send_v to_o the_o pope_n but_o not_o a_o word_n of_o any_o absolution_n which_o have_v be_v more_o to_o his_o purpose_n if_o this_o have_v be_v a_o excommunication_n it_o can_v be_v nothing_o but_o a_o threaten_a that_o unless_o this_o abuse_n be_v reform_v he_o will_v hold_v no_o communion_n with_o they_o as_o victor_n a_o much_o better_a pope_n and_o in_o much_o better_a time_n deal_v with_o the_o asiatic_n over_o who_o he_o have_v no_o jurisdiction_n there_o be_v a_o vast_a difference_n between_o formal_a excommunication_n and_o withhold_v of_o communion_n as_o also_o between_o impose_v ecclesiastical_a punishment_n and_o only_o represent_v what_o be_v incur_v by_o the_o canon_n where_o observe_v with_o i_o two_o thing_n first_o r._n c._n his_o great_a mistake_n that_o here_o be_v a_o command_n to_o erect_v new_a bishopric_n to_o which_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o father_n oblige_v not_o and_o therefore_o it_o must_v proceed_v from_o sovereign_a authority_n whereas_o here_o be_v only_o a_o fill_n or_o supply_v of_o the_o empty_a see_v the_o author_n word_n be_v de_fw-la renovandis_fw-la episcopatibus_fw-la of_o renew_v not_o erect_v bishopric_n and_o per_fw-la septem_fw-la annos_fw-la destituta_fw-la episcopis_fw-la they_o have_v want_v bishop_n for_o seven_o year_n last_o the_o name_n of_o the_o see_v supply_v which_o be_v all_o ancient_a episcopal_a see_v from_o the_o first_o conversion_n of_o the_o westsaxon_n do_v evince_v this_o 6._o winchester_n schireborne_v or_o salessb●ry_a wells_n credinton_n now_o exeter_n and_o the_o bishopric_n of_o cornwall_n call_v ancient_o st._n german_n second_o observe_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v do_v in_o this_o business_n be_v do_v by_o the_o king_n authority_n congregavit_fw-la rex_fw-la edwardus_fw-la synodum_fw-la king_n edward_n assemble_v a_o synod_n say_v the_o same_o author_n in_o the_o place_n cite_v and_o he_o call_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o synod_n decretum_fw-la regis_fw-la the_o king_n decree_n this_o be_v more_o to_o prove_v the_o king_n political_a headship_n in_o convocate_a synod_n and_o confirm_v synod_n than_o all_o his_o conjecture_n and_o surmise_n to_o the_o contrary_n 11._o they_o with_o all_o humility_n admit_v legate_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o time_n of_o kinulphus_n and_o off●_n and_o admit_v the_o erection_n of_o a_o new_a archbishopric_n in_o england_n why_o shall_v they_o not_o admit_v legate_n what_o be_v legate_n but_o message_n and_o ambassador_n the_o office_n of_o a_o ambassador_n be_v sacred_a though_o from_o the_o great_a turk_n but_o do_v they_o admit_v they_o to_o hold_v legantine_n court_n and_o swallow_v up_o the_o whole_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o kingdom_n king_n offa_n desire_v to_o have_v a_o new_a archbishopric_n establish_v at_o lichfeild_n within_o his_o own_o dominion_n and_o before_o he_o have_v the_o concurrence_n of_o pope_n adrian_n have_v exclude_v the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n out_o of_o the_o mercian_n kingdom_n by_o royal_a authority_n on_o the_o other_o side_n kenulphus_n desire_v to_o have_v the_o archbishopric_n settle_v as_o it_o be_v former_o at_o canterbury_n this_o be_v nothing_o to_o enforce_a jurisdiction_n england_n always_o admit_v the_o pope_n legate_n and_o his_o bull_n with_o consent_n of_o the_o king_n 192_o but_o not_o otherwise_o here_o again_o he_o cite_v no_o authority_n but_o his_o own_o they_o profess_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o bishop_n to_o punish_v priest_n and_o religious_a man_n and_o not_o to_o king_n no_o man_n doubt_n of_o it_o in_o their_o sense_n but_o they_o who_o leave_v nothing_o certain_a in_o the_o world_n here_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o heap_n of_o confuse_a generality_n in_o some_o case_n the_o punishment_n of_o clergy_n man_n do_v not_o belong_v to_o king_n judge_n but_o archbishop_n that_o be_v case_n of_o ecclesiastical_a cognisance_n tryable_a by_o the_o cannon_n law_n in_o the_o first_o instance_n in_o other_o case_n it_o belong_v not_o to_o archbishop_n but_o to_o king_n to_o be_v their_o judge_n as_o in_o case_n of_o civil_a cognisance_n or_o upon_o the_o last_o appeal_n not_o that_o the_o king_n be_v bind_v to_o determine_v they_o in_o his_o own_o person_n but_o by_o fit_a deputy_n or_o delegate_n plato_n make_v all_o regiment_n to_o consist_v of_o these_o three_o part_n politico_n know_v command_a and_o execute_v the_o first_o belong_v to_o the_o king_n and_o his_o council_n the_o second_o to_o the_o king_n in_o h●s_n person_n the_o three_o to_o the_o king_n by_o his_o deputy_n so_o the_o king_n govern_v in_o the_o church_n but_o not_o as_o a_o churchman_n in_o the_o army_n but_o not_o as_o a_o soldier_n in_o the_o city_n but_o not_o as_o a_o merchant_n in_o the_o country_n but_o not_o as_o a_o husbandman_n our_o king_n do_v never_o use_v to_o determine_v spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n in_o their_o own_o person_n but_o by_o meet_v select_v delegate_n person_n of_o great_a maturity_n of_o judgement_n of_o know_a dexterity_n in_o the_o cannon_n law_n of_o approve_a integrity_n and_o last_o such_o at_o least_o some_o of_o the_o number_n as_o be_v qualify_v by_o their_o calling_n to_o exercise_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n and_o to_o act_v by_o excommunication_n or_o absolution_n according_a to_o the_o exigence_n of_o the_o cause_n and_o who_o more_o proper_a to_o be_v such_o delegate_n in_o question_n of_o moment_n than_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n this_o be_v so_o evident_a in_o our_o law_n and_o history_n that_o it_o be_v not_o only_o lose_v labour_n but_o shame_n to_o oppose_v it_o king_n edgar_n word_n in_o the_o place_n allege_v be_v these_o meae_fw-la solicitudinis_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o belong_v to_o my_o care_n to_o provide_v necessary_n for_o the_o minister_n of_o church_n etc._n etc._n and_o to_o take_v order_n for_o their_o peace_n and_o quiet_a the_o examination_n of_o who_o manner_n belong_v to_o you_o whether_o they_o live_v continent_o and_o behave_v themselves_o honest_o to_o they_o that_o be_v without_o whether_o they_o be_v solicitous_a in_o perform_v divine_a office_n diligent_a to_o instruct_v the_o people_n sober_a in_o their_o conversation_n modest_a in_o their_o habit_n discreet_a in_o their_o judgement_n no_o man_n doubt_n of_o this_o but_o for_o all_o this_o edgar_n do_v not_o forget_v his_o kingly_a office_n and_o duty_n see_v the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o same_o oration_n to_o the_o clergy_n contempta_fw-la sunt_fw-la verba_fw-la ib●dem_fw-la veniendum_fw-la est_fw-la ad_fw-la verbera_fw-la etc._n etc._n word_n be_v despise_v it_o must_v come_v to_o blow_n thou_o have_v with_o thou_o there_o the_o venerable_a father_n edelwald_n bishop_n of_o winchester_n and_o oswald_z the_o most_o reverend_a bishop_n of_o worcester_n i_o commit_v that_o business_n to_o you_o that_o person_n of_o bad_a conversation_n may_v be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o person_n of_o good_a life_n bring_v in_o by_o your_o episcopal_a censure_n and_o my_o royal_a authority_n so_o edgar_n do_v not_o forget_v his_o political_a headship_n what_o king_n wither_a say_v be_v speak_v in_o the_o council_n of_o becancelde_n where_o he_o himself_o fate_n as_o a_o civil_a precedent_n and_o where_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n issue_v in_o his_o name_n and_o by_o his_o authority_n firmiter_fw-la decernimus_fw-la etc._n etc._n his_o word_n be_v these_o it_o belong_v to_o he_o the_o king_n to_o make_v earl_n duke_n noble_a man_n prince_n precedent_n and_o secular_a judge_n but_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o metropolitan_a or_o archbishop_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n to_o choose_v bishop_n abbat_n and_o other_o prelate_n etc._n etc._n if_o king_n wither_a have_v say_v it_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n it_o have_v make_v for_o his_o purpose_n indeed_o but_o say_v as_o he_o do_v it_o belong_v to_o the_o metropolitan_a it_o cut_v the_o throat_n of_o his_o cause_n and_o show_v clear_o what_o we_o say_v that_o our_o metropolitan_o be_v not_o subordinate_a to_o any_o single_a ecclesiastical_a superior_a as_o for_o the_o bound_n between_o the_o king_n and_o the_o archbishop_n we_o know_v they_o well_o enough_o he_o need_v not_o trouble_v his_o head_n about_o it_o they_o suffer_v their_o subject_n to_o profess_v that_o qui_fw-la non_fw-la communicate_v ecclesiae_fw-la romanae_fw-la hereticus_fw-la est_fw-la 〈◊〉_d quicquid_fw-la ipsa_fw-la statuerit_fw-la suscipio_fw-la &_o quod_fw-la damnaverit_fw-la damno_fw-la he_o be_v a_o heretic_n that_o hold_v not_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n what_o she_o determine_v i_o receive_v what_o she_o condemn_v i_o condemn_v suppose_v these_o to_o be_v the_o very_a word_n of_o ealred_n i●tallibiliti●_n though_o i_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o trust_v his_o citation_n further_o than_o i_o see_v they_o and_o suppose_v they_o to_o have_v
show_v that_o the_o britannic_a church_n be_v free_a from_o all_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n for_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n and_o so_o ought_v to_o continue_v for_o the_o clear_n of_o which_o point_n i_o show_v that_o there_o be_v a_o parity_n of_o power_n among_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o the_o sovereignty_n do_v not_o rest_n in_o any_o single_a apostle_n but_o in_o the_o apostolical_a college_n i_o show_v that_o in_o the_o age_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o age_n next_o succeed_v the_o high_a order_n in_o the_o church_n under_o the_o apostle_n be_v national_a protarchs_n or_o patriarch_n and_o by_o what_o mean_n and_o upon_o what_o ground_n in_o after_o age_n some_o of_o these_o patriarch_n come_v to_o be_v exalt_v above_o the_o rest_n and_o to_o obscure_v their_o fellow_n but_o each_o of_o these_o within_o their_o own_o patriarchates_n superior_n do_v challenge_v a_o jurisdiction_n independent_a upon_o any_o single_a superior_a as_o may_v be_v make_v clear_a by_o many_o instance_n when_o athanasius_n and_o paulus_n procure_v the_o letter_n of_o pope_n julius_n for_o their_o restitution_n 11_o i_o meddle_v not_o with_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o cause_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n take_v the_o reprehension_n of_o julius_n as_o a_o contumely_n they_o call_v a_o council_n at_o antioch_n they_o accuse_v julius_n sharp_o and_o show_v that_o he_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v to_o contradict_v they_o more_o than_o they_o do_v contradict_v he_o when_o he_o thrust_v novatus_n out_o of_o the_o church_n neither_o do_v the_o great_a protopatriarch_n challenge_v this_o independency_n only_o but_o other_o lesser_a patriarch_n also_o as_o saint_n cyprian_n when_o fortunatus_n faelicissimus_fw-la and_o other_o be_v sentence_v and_o excommunicate_v in_o africa_n address_v their_o complaint_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n let_v we_o hear_v what_o saint_n cyprian_a say_v of_o it_o 3._o what_o cause_n have_v they_o to_o come_v and_o relate_v the_o make_n of_o a_o false_a bishop_n against_o true_a bishop_n either_o that_o which_o they_o have_v do_v please_v they_o and_o they_o persevere_v in_o their_o wickedness_n or_o if_o it_o displease_v they_o and_o they_o fall_v from_o it_o they_o know_v whether_o to_o return_v for_o whereas_o it_o be_v decree_v by_o we_o all_o and_o it_o be_v equal_a and_o just_a that_o every_o one_o cause_n shall_v be_v hear_v there_o where_o the_o crime_n be_v commit_v and_o a_o certain_a portion_n of_o the_o lord_n flock_n be_v assign_v to_o each_o pastor_n which_o he_o be_v to_o govern_v and_o to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o his_o action_n to_o the_o lord_n therefore_o it_o behoove_v those_o who_o we_o be_v over_o not_o to_o run_v up_o and_o down_o nor_o to_o break_v the_o firm_a concord_n of_o bishop_n by_o their_o subtle_a and_o deceitful_a rashness_n but_o to_o plead_v their_o cause_n there_o where_o they_o may_v have_v both_o accuser_n and_o witness_n of_o their_o crime_n unless_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o african_a bishop_n who_o have_v sentence_v they_o already_o seem_v to_o a_o few_o desperate_a cast_n aways_o to_o be_v inferior_a etc._n etc._n to_o say_v with_o bellarmine_n that_o saint_n cyprian_n speak_v only_o of_o the_o first_o instance_n be_v to_o contradict_v saint_n cyprian_n himself_o who_o say_v express_o that_o the_o cause_n have_v be_v sentence_v already_o in_o africa_n then_o i_o show_v the_o bound_n of_o the_o ancient_a roman_a patriarchate_o out_o of_o ruffinus_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o chapter_n may_v be_v reduce_v to_o a_o syllogism_n whatsoever_o church_n or_o church_n be_v free_a and_o exempt_v from_o the_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n from_o the_o beginning_n until_o the_o general_a council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o after_o until_o the_o six_o hundred_o year_n of_o christ_n aught_o to_o continue_v free_a and_o exempt_v for_o ever_o notwithstanding_o the_o subsequent_a usurpation_n of_o any_o foreign_a prelate_n or_o patriarch_n this_o be_v clear_o and_o irrefragable_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n itself_o 7._o and_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v intrude_v himself_o after_o that_o time_n he_o be_v a_o robber_n and_o a_o usurper_n and_o can_v never_o prescribe_v to_o a_o legal_a possession_n according_a to_o the_o famous_a rule_n of_o the_o law_n adversus_fw-la furem_fw-la aeternae_fw-la authoritas_fw-la esto_fw-la privilege_n but_o the_o britannic_a church_n be_v free_a and_o exempt_v from_o the_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n from_o the_o beginning_n until_o the_o general_a council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o after_o until_o the_o six_o hundred_o year_n of_o christ._n this_o assumption_n be_v prove_v first_o by_o their_o silence_n upon_o who_o the_o proof_n in_o law_n do_v rest_n be_v not_o able_a to_o produce_v one_o instance_n of_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o jurisdiction_n in_o britain_n or_o any_o of_o the_o britannic_a island_n for_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n and_o in_o some_o part_n of_o they_o scarce_o for_o 1200._o 1238._o year_n when_o the_o pope_n legate_n will_v have_v enter_v into_o scotland_n to_o visit_v the_o the_o church_n there_o about_o the_o year_n 1238._o alexander_n the_o second_o than_o king_n of_o the_o scot_n forbid_v he_o to_o do_v so_o allege_v that_o none_o of_o his_o predecessor_n have_v ever_o addmit_v any_o such_o neither_o will_v he_o suffer_v it_o and_o therefore_o will_v he_o at_o his_o own_o peril_n to_o forbear_v second_o by_o priority_n of_o foundation_n the_o britannic_a church_n be_v the_o elder_a sister_n and_o ancient_a than_o the_o roman_a and_o therefore_o can_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o roman_a church_n from_o the_o beginning_n that_o be_v before_o there_o be_v a_o roman_a church_n three_o it_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o right_n of_o ordination_n and_o election_n of_o all_o our_o primat_n for_o all_o other_o right_n of_o jurisdiction_n do_v follow_v or_o pursue_v the_o right_n of_o ordination_n but_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o all_o our_o british_n primate_fw-la or_o archbishop_n be_v nominate_v and_o elect_v by_o our_o prince_n with_o synod_n and_o ordain_v by_o their_o own_o suffragans_fw-la at_o home_n as_o dubricius_n st._n david_n samson_n etc._n etc._n not_o only_o in_o the_o reign_v of_o aurelius_n ambrose_n and_o king_n arthur_n but_o even_o until_o the_o time_n of_o henry_n the_o first_o after_o the_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n of_o christ_n as_o giraldus_n cambrensis_fw-la witness_v semper_fw-la tamen_fw-la etc._n etc._n 1._o yet_o always_o until_o the_o full_a conquest_n of_o wales_n by_o the_o king_n of_o england_n henry_n the_o first_o the_o bishop_n of_o wales_n be_v consecrate_v by_o the_o archbishop_n of_o st._n david_n and_o he_o likewise_o be_v consecrate_v by_o other_o bishop●_n as_o his_o suffragans_fw-la without_o profess_v any_o manner_n of_o subjection_n to_o any_o other_o church_n but_o principal_o it_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o answer_n of_o dionothus_n the_o reverend_a and_o learned_a abbot_n and_o rector_n of_o the_o monastery_n and_o university_n of_o bangor_n and_o from_o the_o solemn_a sentence_n or_o decree_n of_o two_o british_a synod_n in_o the_o point_n record_v by_o all_o our_o historiographer_n who_o write_v the_o act_n of_o those_o time_n i_o confess_v he_o nobles_n here_o and_o there_o at_o some_o odd_a end_n of_o this_o discourse_n but_o take_v no_o ●●ner_n of_o notice_n of_o the_o main_a ground_n especial_o the_o two_o british_a synod_n which_o be_v express_v in_o the_o point_n and_o the_o answer_n of_o dion●thus_n that_o they_o refuse_v absolute_o to_o submit_v to_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o to_o receive_v austin_n for_o their_o archbishop_n that_o as_o for_o that_o man_n who_o they_o call_v the_o pope_n they_o oligi_v 〈◊〉_d no_o obedience_n but_o the_o obedience_n of_o love_n that_o they_o be_v immediate_o under_o god_n subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o caer_n leon_n but_o let_v we_o take_v a_o view_n of_o his_o exception_n power_n first_o he_o say_v that_o bellarmine_n have_v not_o these_o word_n that_o christ_n in_o say_v these_o word_n as_o my_o father_n send_v use_v so_o send_v i_o you_o do_v endue_v his_o apostle_n with_o all_o fullness_n of_o power_n that_o mortal_a man_n be_v capable_a of_o neither_o do_v i_o cite_v his_o word_n but_o his_o sense_n as_o he_o may_v see_v by_o the_o character_n but_o that_o bellarmine_n say_v as_o much_o or_o more_o than_o this_o i_o will_v now_o make_v it_o good_a let_v he_o speak_v for_o himself_o therefore_o that_o the_o apostle_n receive_v the●r_a jurisdiction_n immediate_o from_o christ_n 23._o first_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n do_v testify_v john_n 20._o as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o send_v i_o you_o which_o place_n the_o father_n crysostome_n and_o theophylact_fw-mi do_v so_o expound_v that_o they_o say_v plain_o that_o the_o apostle_n be_v make_v by_o these_o word_n the_o vicar_n of_o
determine_v cause_n of_o religion_n the_o emperor_n do_v not_o trouble_v himself_o much_o at_o it_o but_o the_o pope_n have_v create_v three_o spanish_a cardinal_n he_o forbid_v they_o to_o accept_v the_o arm_n or_o use_v the_o name_n or_o habit_n and_o not_o long_o after_o publish_v a_o reformation_n of_o the_o clergy_n 1548._o contain_v twenty_o three_o point_n first_o of_o ordination_n and_o election_n of_o minister_n second_o of_o the_o office_n of_o ecclesiastical_a order_n three_o of_o the_o office_n of_o dean_n and_o canon_n four_o of_o canonical_a hour_n five_o of_o monastery_n six_o of_o school_n and_o university_n seven_o of_o hospital_n eighthly_a of_o the_o office_n of_o a_o preacher_n nine_o of_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n ten_o of_o the_o administration_n of_o baptism_n eleven_o of_o the_o administration_n of_o confirmation_n twelve_o of_o ceremony_n thirteen_o of_o the_o mass_n fourteenth●y_v of_o the_o administration_n of_o penitence_n fifteenth_o of_o the_o administration_n of_o extreme_a unction_n sixteenth_o of_o the_o administration_n of_o matrimomy_n seventeenthly_a of_o ecclesiastical_a ceremony_n eighteenthly_a of_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n nineteenth_o of_o plurality_n of_o benefice_n twentith_o of_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o people_n one_o and_o twentith_o of_o visitation_n two_o and_o twentithly_fw-mi of_o counsel_n three_o and_o twentithly_fw-mi of_o excommunication_n charles_n the_o five_o and_o the_o german_a diet_n do_v assume_v to_o themselves_o a_o legislative_a power_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n none_o of_o our_o prince_n be_v ever_o more_o devote_v to_o rome_n then_o queen_n mary_n yet_o when_o paul_n the_o 4_o the_o revoke_v cardinal_n poolos_n legantine_n power_n in_o england_n and_o design_v one_o petus_n a_o franciscan_a to_o come_v legate_n in_o his_o place_n she_o shut_v all_o the_o port_n of_o england_n against_o all_o messenger_n from_o rome_n and_o command_v all_o the_o brief_n and_o bull_n to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o bearer_n and_o deliver_v unto_o she_o so_o well_o be_v she_o satisfy_v that_o no_o roman_a legate_n have_v any_o thing_n to_o do_v in_o england_n without_o the_o prince_n licence_n but_o i_o have_v bring_v instance_n enough_o until_o he_o be_v please_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o they_o to_o all_o which_o he_o return_v no_o answer_n but_o these_o general_a word_n see_v l._n d._n have_v allege_v diverse_a fact_n of_o catholic_n prince_n in_o disobey_v papal_a authority_n and_o thence_o infer_v that_o they_o do_v as_o much_o as_o king_n henry_n who_o not_o only_o disobey_v but_o deny_v papal_a authority_n let_v we_o allege_v both_o more_o ancient_a and_o great_a emperor_n who_o have_v profess_v that_o they_o have_v no_o authority_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n and_o avow_v papal_a authority_n after_o this_o rate_n he_o may_v survey_v the_o whole_a world_n in_o a_o few_o minute_n let_v the_o reader_n judge_n whether_o i_o have_v not_o just_a cause_n to_o call_v upon_o he_o for_o a_o answer_n be_v they_o only_o diverse_a fact_n of_o catholic_n prince_n by_o his_o leave_n they_o be_v both_o fact_n and_o decree_n and_o constitution_n and_o law_n and_o canon_n of_o the_o most_o famous_a emperor_n and_o prince_n of_o christendom_n with_o their_o diet_n and_o parliament_n and_o synod_n and_o counsel_n and_o university_n or_o do_v it_o seem_v to_o he_o that_o they_o only_o disobey_v papal_a authority_n when_o he_o read_v they_o over_o more_o attentive_o he_o will_v find_v that_o they_o have_v not_o only_o disobey_v papal_a authority_n but_o deny_v it_o as_o he_o say_v henry_n the_o 8_o the_o do_v in_o all_o the_o principal_a part_n and_o branch_n of_o it_o which_o be_v in_o controversy_n between_o they_o and_o we_o nay_o they_o have_v not_o only_o deny_v to_o the_o pope_n that_o which_o he_o call_v papal_a authority_n to_o convocate_v synod_n to_o confirm_v synod_n to_o make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n to_o dispose_v of_o ecclesiastical_a preferment_n to_o receive_v the_o last_o appeal_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n but_o they_o have_v exercise_v it_o themselves_o they_o have_v dispose_v of_o the_o papacy_n they_o have_v depose_v the_o pope_n they_o have_v shut_v out_o his_o legate_n they_o have_v appeal_v from_o his_o sentence_n they_o have_v not_o suffer_v their_o subject_n to_o go_v upon_o his_o summons_n they_o have_v cause_v his_o decree_n to_o be_v tear_v in_o piece_n most_o disgraceful_o and_o make_v edict_n and_o statute_n and_o pragmatical_a sanction_n against_o his_o usurpation_n they_o have_v regulate_v the_o clergy_n and_o reform_v the_o church_n within_o their_o dominion_n and_o when_o they_o think_v fit_a during_o their_o pleasure_n they_o have_v stop_v all_o entercouse_n with_o rome_n the_o king_n of_o spain_n suffer_v no_o more_o appeal_n from_o sicily_n to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n than_o our_o prince_n from_o england_n and_o exercise_v all_o manner_n of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdction_n by_o delegate_n which_o certain_o neither_o they_o nor_o other_o prince_n will_v do_v if_o they_o do_v at_o all_o believe_v that_o the_o papacy_n be_v a_o universal_a spiritual_a monarchy_n institute_v by_o christ._n but_o it_o seem_v that_o he_o delight_v more_o in_o the_o use_n of_o his_o sword_n then_o of_o his_o buckler_n and_o in_o stead_n of_o repel_v my_o argument_n he_o busy_v himself_o in_o make_v new_a knot_n for_o i_o to_o untie_v he_o know_v well_o that_o this_o be_v no_o logical_a proceed_n and_o i_o may_v just_o serve_v he_o with_o the_o same_o sauce_n but_o i_o seek_v only_o the_o clear_a discovery_n of_o truth_n and_o will_v pursue_v his_o step_n throughout_o his_o opposition_n justify_v the_o first_o thing_n that_o he_o object_v to_o i_o be_v the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n make_v by_o king_n henry_n and_o his_o church_n in_o which_o oath_n say_v he_o be_v swear_v five_o thing_n first_o that_o the_o king_n of_o england_n be_v not_o only_a governor_n but_o only_o and_o supreme_a governor_n second_o not_o only_o in_o some_o but_o in_o all_o ecclesiastical_a thing_n and_o cause_n three_o as_o well_o in_o all_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n as_o temporal_a four_o that_o no_o foreign_a prelate_n have_v any_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n in_o england_n five_o all_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n be_v renounce_v this_o he_o be_v please_v to_o call_v the_o first_o new_a creed_n of_o the_o english_a protestant_a church_n by_o which_o it_o be_v become_v both_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a before_o i_o give_v a_o distinct_a answer_n to_o this_o objection_n it_o will_v be_v needful_a in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o put_v he_o in_o mind_n of_o some_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v former_o demonstrate_v to_o he_o touch_v this_o particular_a which_o he_o have_v be_v please_v to_o pass_v by_o in_o silence_n first_o 8._o who_o it_o be_v that_o first_o present_v this_o title_n to_o king_n henry_n archbishop_n warrham_n who_o sanders_n call_v a_o excellent_a man_n and_o a_o popish_a convocation_n second_o who_o confirm_v this_o title_n unto_o he_o four_o and_o twenty_o bishop_n and_o nine_o and_o twenty_o abbat_n in_o parliament_n none_o dissent_v there_o be_v not_o one_o protestant_a among_o they_o all_o three_o who_o be_v the_o flatterer_n of_o king_n henry_n that_o preach_v up_o his_o supremacy_n and_o print_v book_n in_o defence_n of_o this_o supremacy_n and_o set_v forth_o catachism●s_v to_o instruct_v the_o subject_n and_o teach_v they_o what_o the_o supremacy_n be_v who_o contrive_v and_o pen_v this_o very_a oath_n and_o be_v the_o first_o that_o take_v it_o themselves_o and_o incite_v all_o other_o to_o take_v it_o even_o bishop_n gardiner_n tonstall_n heath_n bonner_n stokesley_n thurelby_n etc._n etc._n all_o r._n c._n his_o friend_n the_o great_a opposer_n of_o the_o reformation_n and_o the_o rough_a persecuter_n of_o protestant_n last_o consider_v what_o i_o cite_v out_o of_o cardinal_n poole_n 75._o that_o god_n the_o father_n have_v assign_v this_o office_n to_o christian_a emperor_n that_o they_o shall_v act_v the_o part_n of_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o again_o the_o pope_n as_o a_o priestly_a head_n do_v execute_v the_o office_n of_o christ_n the_o true_a head_n but_o we_o may_v also_o true_o say_v that_o the_o emperor_n do_v execute_v the_o office_n of_o christ_n as_o a_o kingly_a head_n these_o thing_n be_v premise_v to_o dull_a the_o edge_n of_o his_o argument_n now_o i_o proceed_v to_o a_o direct_a answer_n and_o first_o i_o charge_v he_o with_o chap_a and_o change_v the_o word_n of_o the_o oath_n the_o word_n of_o the_o oath_n be_v these_o that_o the_o king_n highness_n be_v the_o only_a supreme_a governor_n in_o this_o realm_n but_o in_o paraphrase_v upon_o they_o and_o press_v they_o he_o render_v they_o thus_o not_o only_a governor_n but_o only_o and_o supreme_a governor_n there_o be_v a_o vast_a difference_n between_o these_o two_o to_o say_v the_o king_n be_v the_o only_a
same_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v hard_a measure_n to_o destroy_v man_n for_o mere_a speculative_a opinion_n which_o it_o may_v be_v be_v not_o in_o their_o own_o power_n so_o long_o as_o there_o be_v neither_o blasphemy_n nor_o sedition_n in_o the_o case_n it_o be_v often_o easy_o to_o secure_v a_o man_n action_n then_o to_o cure_v the_o error_n of_o his_o judgement_n in_o the_o next_o place_n he_o charge_v i_o with_o contradict_v of_o myself_o 2._o because_o i_o say_v the_o emperor_n and_o other_o prince_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n have_v do_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o effect_n word_n with_o the_o king_n of_o england_n and_o in_o another_o place_n i_o confess_v that_o the_o king_n of_o england_n have_v abolish_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o the_o emperor_n have_v not_o this_o he_o faith_n be_v to_o give_v myself_o the_o lie_n certain_o he_o be_v in_o some_o heat_n or_o passion_n when_o this_o word_n of_o disgrace_n drop_v from_o his_o pen_n as_o common_o disputer_n be_v when_o they_o find_v that_o they_o have_v get_v the_o wrong_a end_n of_o the_o staff_n if_o he_o have_v advise_o read_v over_o my_o assertion_n it_o be_v this_o that_o either_o they_o have_v do_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o effect_n or_o at_o least_o have_v plead_v for_o it_o if_o either_o part_n of_o the_o disjunction_n be_v true_a my_o assertion_n be_v a_o truth_n and_o no_o contradiction_n much_o less_o a_o lie_n which_o imply_v that_o it_o be_v both_o against_o truth_n and_o against_o conscience_n now_o i_o have_v show_v clear_o in_o the_o vindication_n that_o they_o have_v not_o only_o plead_v it_o but_o swear_v it_o that_o they_o will_v maintain_v the_o rite_n liberty_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o empire_n inviolated_a against_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o they_o have_v protest_v that_o they_o will_v not_o have_v his_o holiness_n to_o be_v ignorant_a that_o they_o neither_o can_v nor_o will_v endure_v his_o intolerable_a pressure_n any_o long_o but_o will_v vindicate_v themselves_o further_o to_o do_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o effect_n do_v not_o signify_v to_o do_v the_o same_o individual_a action_n nor_o always_o the_o same_o specifical_a action_n but_o only_o that_o which_o argue_v the_o same_o power_n or_o imply_v the_o same_o consequence_n if_o a_o ordinary_a do_v suspend_v a_o clerk_n from_o his_o benefice_n or_o degrade_v he_o from_o his_o holy_a order_n so_o long_o as_o the_o question_n be_v only_o whether_o he_o be_v under_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o ordinary_a it_o be_v all_o one_o in_o effect_n while_o the_o one_o prove_v the_o intention_n as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o if_o a_o thief_n strale_v a_o shilling_n or_o a_o pound_n it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o thing_n in_o effect_n because_o the_o thief_n pretend_v no_o right_a to_o what_o he_o take_v but_o if_o a_o magistrate_n impose_v a_o tribute_n of_o a_o shilling_n or_o a_o pound_n where_o the_o question_n be_v only_o whether_o he_o have_v power_n to_o impose_v tribute_n or_o not_o it_o be_v all_o one_o in_o effect_n for_o his_o title_n be_v as_o just_a to_o the_o one_o as_o to_o the_o other_o and_o as_o he_o impose_v a_o shilling_n to_o day_n so_o he_o may_v if_o he_o have_v occasion_n impose_v a_o pound_n to_o morrow_n the_o whole_a and_o all_o the_o part_n be_v the_o same_o in_o effect_n the_o emperor_n have_v do_v all_o the_o particular_a act_n which_o the_o king_n of_o england_n have_v do_v concern_v patronage_n investiture_n legislation_n reformation_n legate_n appeal_n ten_o first_o fruit_n etc._n etc._n and_o moreover_o have_v depose_v pope_n which_o the_o king_n of_o england_n never_o attempt_v to_o do_v though_o they_o have_v not_o make_v one_o general_a act_n of_o abolition_n why_o be_v not_o this_o the_o same_o in_o effect_n he_o that_o satisfy_v a_o debt_n in_o pistol_n and_o he_o who_o satisfy_v it_o in_o crack_a groat_n do_v both_o the_o same_o thing_n in_o effect_n to_o conclude_v they_o who_o assume_v the_o right_a to_o be_v the_o last_o judge_n of_o their_o own_o liberty_n and_o privilege_n in_o all_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n do_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o effect_n whether_o the_o respective_a privilege_n of_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o be_v more_o or_o less_o but_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o king_n of_o england_n do_v assume_v to_o themselves_o the_o right_a to_o be_v the_o last_o judge_n of_o their_o own_o liberty_n and_o privilege_n in_o all_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o therefore_o though_o the_o one_o may_v take_v or_o mistake_v himself_o to_o be_v within_o the_o old_a roman_a patriarchate_n which_o the_o other_o be_v not_o or_o whatsoever_o other_o difference_n there_o may_v be_v in_o the_o extent_n of_o their_o liberty_n or_o in_o their_o claim_n yet_o they_o do_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o effect_n the_o only_a difference_n between_o the_o emperor_n and_o henry_n the_o eight_o be_v this_o that_o they_o deny_v the_o papacy_n in_o parcel_n and_o he_o deny_v it_o in_o gross_a they_o deny_v his_o sovereign_a legislative_a power_n they_o deny_v his_o patronage_n of_o church_n they_o deny_v his_o investiture_n of_o bishop_n they_o deny_v his_o superiority_n above_o general_a counsel_n they_o deny_v his_o ten_o and_o first_o fruit_n and_o pardon_n and_o indulgence_n and_o dispensation_n so_o they_o pull_v away_o his_o steal_a feather_n one_o by_o one_o and_o henry_n the_o eight_o uncase_v he_o all_o at_o once_o but_o except_o some_o patriarchall_a rite_n which_o britain_n never_o acknowledge_v which_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o papacy_n they_o leave_v he_o as_o naked_a the_o one_o as_o the_o other_o this_o i_o may_v well_o call_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o effect_n 3_o now_o be_v we_o come_v to_o take_v a_o view_n of_o his_o witness_n to_o try_v if_o he_o be_v more_o fortunate_a in_o offend_v then_o he_o be_v in_o defend_v constantine_n but_o true_o they_o be_v such_o that_o their_o very_a name_n and_o their_o well_o know_a act_n do_v sufficient_o confute_v all_o his_o evidence_n 2._o the_o first_o be_v constantine_n the_o great_a who_o profess_v open_o that_o he_o can_v not_o judge_n of_o bishop_n no_o such_o thing_n he_o say_v only_o that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v judge_v of_o all_o man_n when_o all_o man_n have_v imperial_a power_n his_o argument_n will_v have_v more_o force_n in_o it_o but_o nothing_o to_o his_o purpose_n the_o only_a question_n between_o we_o be_v about_o the_o papacy_n and_o his_o proof_n make_v only_o for_o the_o privilege_n of_o episcopacy_n whatsoever_o constantine_n do_v at_o this_o time_n be_v a_o mere_a prudentiall_a act_n he_o have_v convocate_v the_o bishop_n together_o against_o arrius_n and_o instead_o of_o endeavour_v to_o suppress_v the_o common_a enemy_n they_o fall_v into_o quarrel_n and_o mutual_a complaint_n one_o against_o another_o about_o business_n of_o no_o moment_n constantine_n see_v quod_fw-la per_fw-la hujusmodi_fw-la jurgia_fw-la causa_fw-la summi_fw-la negocii_fw-la frustraretur_fw-la that_o the_o main_a business_n against_o arrius_n be_v hinder_v by_o these_o unreasonable_a brawling_n and_o ne_fw-la innotesceret_fw-la ulli_fw-la hominum_fw-la etc._n etc._n to_o prevent_v scandal_n that_o the_o fault_n and_o contention_n of_o priest_n may_v not_o appear_v to_o the_o world_n he_o suppress_v they_o and_o refer_v they_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n this_o be_v a_o more_o prudent_a course_n and_o more_o conducible_a at_o that_o time_n to_o the_o advantage_n of_o christian_a religion_n then_o to_o have_v examine_v every_o scandalous_a accusation_n of_o one_o against_o another_o 11._o yet_o even_o in_o this_o there_o appear_v sufficient_a proof_n of_o constantine_n judiciary_n power_n over_o the_o bishop_n first_o they_o do_v all_o offer_n their_o mutual_a accusation_n one_o of_o another_o to_o he_o as_o to_o their_o proper_a judge_n second_o he_o command_v they_o all_o to_o put_v their_o accusation_n in_o writing_n and_o to_o deliver_v they_o to_o his_o hand_n three_o he_o bind_v they_o all_o up_o in_o a_o bundle_n and_o seal_v they_o four_o he_o make_v they_o friend_n and_o then_o burn_v they_o in_o their_o presence_n and_o impose_v upon_o they_o a_o perpetual_a amnesty_n or_o law_n of_o forgetfulness_n all_o these_o be_v judiciary_n acts._n it_o be_v true_a constantine_n honour_a bishop_n very_o much_o he_o make_v they_o his_o companion_n in_o his_o voyage_n his_o fellow_n commoner_n at_o his_o table_n he_o cast_v his_o cloak_n over_o their_o fault_n but_o this_o be_v not_o for_o want_v of_o judiciary_n power_n over_o they_o 35._o but_o because_o they_o be_v consecrate_v to_o god_n and_o he_o believe_v that_o in_o thus_o do_v god_n will_v become_v propitious_a to_o he_o but_o at_o other_o time_n the_o case_n be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o sun_n 23_o he_o
of_o indulgence_n indulgence_n who_o the_o pope_n of_o that_o time_n rebuke_v severe_o nor_o henry_n the_o eight_o but_o the_o excommunication_n of_o clement_n the_o seven_o that_o of_o luther_n be_v altogether_o without_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o question_n between_o he_o and_o i_o which_o concern_v only_o the_o church_n of_o england_n i_o shall_v only_o make_v bold_a to_o tell_v he_o that_o whensoever_o it_o come_v to_o be_v examine_v it_o will_v be_v find_v that_o luther_n have_v many_o other_o cause_n of_o what_o he_o do_v than_o the_o abuse_n of_o some_o preacher_n of_o indulgence_n if_o he_o will_v not_o give_v i_o credit_n let_v he_o cousult_v the_o hundred_o grievance_n of_o the_o german_a nation_n that_o the_o pope_n rebuke_v those_o preacher_n of_o indulgence_n severe_o be_v more_o than_o i_o have_v read_v only_o this_o i_o have_v read_v that_o carolus_n militius_fw-la do_v so_o chide_v tecelius_n the_o pope_n pardoner_n about_o it_o that_o short_o after_o he_o die_v of_o grief_n eight_o concern_v henry_n the_o eight_o the_o excommunication_n of_o clement_n the_o seven_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o total_a adequate_a cause_n of_o his_o separation_n that_o it_o be_v no_o more_o but_o a_o single_a occasion_n the_o original_a privilege_n of_o the_o british_a church_n the_o ancient_a liberty_n and_o immunity_n of_o the_o english_a church_n daily_o invade_v by_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o just_a rite_n and_o flower_n of_o his_o own_o crown_n the_o otherwise_o remediless_a oppression_n of_o his_o subject_n and_o the_o example_n of_o his_o noble_a predecessor_n be_v the_o chief_a ground_n of_o his_o proceed_n against_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n he_o ask_v can_v not_o henry_n the_o eight_o have_v be_v save_v though_o he_o be_v excommunicate_a yes_o why_o not_o justice_n lose_v unjust_a bond_n but_o i_o see_v that_o this_o question_n be_v ground_v upon_o a_o double_a dangerous_a error_n first_o that_o all_o reformation_n of_o ourselves_o be_v a_o sinful_a separation_n from_o other_o church_n whereas_o he_o himself_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v sometime_o virtuous_a and_o necessary_a nay_o every_o reformation_n of_o ourselves_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o sinful_a separation_n from_o other_o that_o it_o be_v no_o separation_n at_o all_o except_o it_o be_v join_v with_o censure_v and_o condemn_v of_o other_o the_o second_o error_n intimate_v in_o this_o question_n be_v this_o that_o so_o long_o as_o there_o be_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n in_o any_o church_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a or_o at_o least_o not_o necessary_a to_o separate_v from_o the_o abuse_n and_o corruption_n thereof_o a_o church_n may_v continue_v a_o true_a particular_a church_n and_o bring_v forth_o child_n to_o god_n and_o yet_o out_o of_o invincible_a ignorance_n maintain_v material_a heresy_n and_o require_v the_o profession_n of_o that_o heresy_n as_o a_o condition_n of_o communicate_v with_o she_o in_o which_o case_n it_o be_v lawful_a nay_o necessary_a after_o conviction_n to_o separate_v from_o her_o error_n those_o error_n and_o corruption_n be_v pardonable_a by_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n to_o they_o who_o err_v out_o of_o invincible_a ignorance_n which_o be_v not_o pardonable_a in_o like_a manner_n to_o they_o who_o sin_n contrary_a to_o the_o light_n of_o their_o own_o conscience_n he_o add_v that_o this_o excommunication_n be_v not_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o neither_o cause_v it_o nor_o approve_v it_o yea_o say_v he_o divers_a of_o they_o dislike_v it_o both_o then_o and_o since_o not_o as_o unjust_a but_o as_o imprudent_a and_o some_o have_v declare_v themselves_o positive_o that_o a_o prince_n and_o a_o multitude_n be_v not_o to_o be_v excommunicate_v it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v for_o the_o good_a of_o both_o party_n that_o all_o man_n be_v so_o moderate_a to_o his_o argument_n i_o give_v two_o answer_n first_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v not_o approve_v the_o excommunication_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o so_o neither_o do_v henry_n the_o eight_o separate_v himself_o from_o the_o cchurch_n of_o rome_n but_o only_o from_o the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n second_o what_o be_v we_o the_o better_a that_o some_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v moderate_a so_o long_o as_o they_o have_v no_o power_n to_o help_v we_o or_o hinder_v the_o act_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n they_o teach_v that_o a_o prince_n or_o a_o multitude_n be_v not_o to_o be_v excommunicate_v but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o court_n of_o rome_n do_v excommunicate_v both_o prince_n and_o multitude_n and_o whole_a kingdom_n and_o give_v they_o away_o to_o stranger_n whereof_o there_o be_v few_o kingdom_n or_o republic_n in_o europe_n that_o have_v not_o be_v sensible_a more_o or_o less_o and_o particular_o england_n have_v feel_v by_o woeful_a experience_n in_o sundry_a age_n clement_n the_o seven_o excommunicate_v king_n henry_n but_o paul_n the_o three_o both_o excommunicate_v and_o interdict_v he_o and_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o separation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o original_n of_o the_o schism_n wherein_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v mere_o passive_a so_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o first_o cause_n of_o the_o schism_n 2._o we_o be_v come_v now_o to_o my_o first_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v causual_o schismatical_a my_o proposition_n be_v this_o whatsoever_o do_v leave_v its_o proper_a place_n in_o the_o body_n either_o natural_a or_o political_a or_o ecclesiastical_a to_o usurp_v the_o office_n of_o the_o head_n or_o to_o usurp_v a_o high_a place_n in_o the_o body_n than_o belong_v unto_o it_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o disorder_n disturbance_n confusion_n and_o schism_n among_o the_o member_n my_o assumption_n be_v this_o but_o the_o virtual_a church_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v the_o pope_n wi●h_v his_o court_n be_v but_o a_o coordinate_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v seek_v to_o usurp_v the_o office_n of_o the_o head_n be_v but_o a_o branch_n do_v challenge_v to_o himself_o the_o place_n of_o the_o root_n be_v but_o a_o stone_n in_o the_o build_n will_v needle_n be_v a_o absolute_a foundation_n for_o all_o person_n place_n and_o time_n be_v but_o a_o eminent_a servant_n in_o the_o family_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v the_o master_n to_o the_o proposition_n he_o take_v no_o exception_n and_o to_o the_o assumption_n he_o confess_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o right_a of_o the_o pope_n do_v seek_v to_o be_v mistress_n of_o all_o other_o church_n and_o a_o external_a subordinate_a foundation_n of_o all_o christian_n in_o all_o time_n and_o place_n which_o be_v no_o more_o than_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o new_a creed_n of_o pius_n the_o four_o 4._o i_o acknowledge_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n and_o i_o promise_v and_o swear_v true_a obedience_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o the_o vicar_n of_o jesus_n christ._n but_o all_o this_o he_o justify_v to_o be_v due_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o include_v in_o the_o supremacy_n of_o his_o pastoral_a office_n but_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o universal_a roman_a church_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o root_n of_o all_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n though_o it_o be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o whole_a roman_a church_n yet_o it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o principal_a writer_n at_o this_o day_n christian_n it_o be_v that_o which_o the_o pope_n and_o their_o courtier_n do_v challenge_v and_o we_o have_v seldom_o see_v they_o fail_v first_o or_o last_o to_o get_v that_o settle_a which_o they_o desire_v the_o pope_n have_v more_o benefice_n to_o bestow_v then_o a_o council_n if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o all_o christian_n than_o linus_n and_o cletus_n and_o clemens_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o st._n john_n 21.24_o who_o be_v one_o of_o the_o twelve_o foundation_n lay_v immediate_o by_o christ_n how_o can_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o all_o christian_n when_o they_o do_v not_o agree_v among_o themselves_o that_o the_o chair_n of_o st._n peter_n be_v annex_v to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n by_o divine_a right_n how_o can_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o all_o christian_n at_o all_o time_n when_o there_o be_v a_o time_n that_o there_o be_v christian_n and_o no_o bishop_n or_o church_n at_o rome_n when_o it_o happen_v many_o time_n as_o in_o this_o present_a vacancy_n that_o there_o be_v no_o bishop_n at_o rome_n st._n peter_n be_v bishop_n of_o antioch_n before_o he_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n then_o there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o antioch_n be_v the_o mistress_n and_o foundation_n of_o all_o
land_n when_o soever_o these_o be_v infringe_v or_o a_o attempt_n make_v to_o destroy_v they_o as_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o crown_n and_o church_n of_o england_n have_v then_o be_v invade_v by_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v the_o manner_n to_o restore_v they_o or_o to_o declare_v they_o by_o a_o statute_n which_o be_v not_o operative_a to_o make_v or_o create_v new_a law_n but_o declarative_a to_o manifest_v or_o to_o restore_v ancient_a law_n this_o i_o tell_v he_o express_o in_o the_o vindication_n 86._o and_o cite_v the_o judgement_n of_o our_o great_a lawyer_n fitz_n herbirt_n and_o my_o lord_n cook_n to_o prove_v that_o this_o very_a statute_n be_v not_o operative_a to_o create_v new_a law_n but_o declarative_a to_o restore_v ancient_a law_n this_o appear_v undeniable_o by_o the_o statute_n itself_o that_o england_n be_v a_o empire_n and_o that_o the_o king_n as_o head_n of_o the_o body_n politic_a consist_v of_o the_o spirituality_n and_o temporality_n have_v plenary_a power_n to_o render_v final_a justice_n for_o all_o matter_n here_o he_o see_v express_o that_o the_o dolitcall_a supremacy_n or_o headship_n of_o the_o king_n over_o the_o spirituality_n as_o well_o as_o temporality_n which_o be_v all_o that_o we_o assert_v at_o this_o day_n be_v the_o a_o e_o nt_v fundamental_a law_n of_o england_n and_o lest_o h●e_v shall_v accuse_v this_o parliament_n of_o partiality_n i_o produce_v another_o that_o be_v more_o ancient_a 5._o the_o crown_n of_o england_n have_v be_v so_o free_a at_o all_o time_n that_o it_o have_v be_v in_o no_o earthly_a subjection_n but_o immediate_o subject_v to_o god_n in_o all_o thing_n touch_v its_o regality_n and_o to_o no_o other_o and_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v submit_v to_o the_o pope_n here_o the_o king_n political_a supremacy_n under_o god_n be_v declare_v to_o be_v the_o fundamental_a law_n of_o the_o land_n let_v he_o not_o say_v that_o this_o be_v intend_v only_o in_o temporal_a matter_n for_o all_o the_o grievance_n mention_v in_o that_o statute_n be_v express_o ecclesiastical_a what_o be_v his_o meaning_n to_o conceal_v all_o this_o and_o much_o more_o and_o to_o accuse_v i_o of_o impudence_n second_o he_o say_v that_o i_o bring_v diverse_a allegation_n wherein_o the_o pope_n pretence_n be_v not_o admit_v or_o where_o the_o pope_n be_v express_o deny_v the_o power_n to_o do_v such_o and_o such_o thing_n do_v we_o profess_v the_o pope_n can_v pretend_v no_o more_o than_o his_o right_n do_v he_o think_v a_o legitimate_a authority_n be_v reject_v when_o the_o particular_a fault_n of_o they_o that_o be_v in_o authority_n be_v resist_v he_o style_v the_o authority_n by_o i_o produce_v mere_a allegation_n yet_o they_o be_v as_o authentic_a record_n as_o england_n do_v afford_v but_o though_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o blanch_v over_o the_o matter_n in_o general_a expression_n of_o the_o pope_n pretence_n and_o such_o or_o such_o thing_n as_o if_o the_o controversy_n have_v be_v only_o about_o a_o handful_n of_o goat_n wool_n i_o will_v make_v bold_a to_o represent_v some_o of_o the_o pope_n pretence_n and_o their_o declaration_n against_o they_o and_o if_o he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n with_o his_o ancestor_n in_o those_o particular_n he_o and_o i_o shall_v be_v in_o a_o probable_a way_n of_o reconciliation_n as_o to_o this_o question_n they_o declare_v that_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n or_o common_a law_n of_o the_o land_n ut_fw-la nullus_fw-la praeter_fw-la licentiam_fw-la regis_fw-la appelletur_fw-la papa_n ●_o that_o no_o pope_n may_v be_v appeal_v unto_o without_o the_o king_n licence_n they_o make_v a_o law_n that_o if_o any_o one_o be_v find_v bring_v in_o the_o pope_n letter_n or_o mandate_n into_o the_o kingdom_n let_v he_o be_v apprehend_v and_o let_v justice_n pass_v upon_o he_o without_o delay_n as_o a_o traitor_n to_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n they_o exercise_v a_o legislative_a power_n in_o all_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n concern_v the_o external_a subsistence_n regiment_n and_o regulate_v of_o the_o church_n &_o over_o all_o ecclesiastical_a person_n in_o all_o age_n as_o well_o of_o the_o saxon_a as_o of_o the_o norman_a king_n they_o permit_v not_o the_o pope_n to_o endow_v vicar_n nor_o make_v spiritual_a corporation_n nor_o exempt_v from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o ordinary_a nor_o appropriate_a church_n nor_o to_o dispose_v benefice_n by_o lapse_n nor_o to_o receive_v the_o revenue_n in_o the_o vacancy_n but_o the_o king_n do_v all_o these_o thing_n as_o i_o show_v at_o large_a in_o the_o vindication_n 9_o they_o permit_v not_o the_o pope_n canon_n law_n to_o have_v any_o place_n in_o england_n further_o than_o they_o please_v to_o receive_v it_o they_o give_v the_o king_n the_o last_o appeal_n of_o all_o his_o subject_n they_o ascribe_v to_o he_o the_o patronage_n of_o bishopric_n and_o investiture_n of_o bishop_n they_o suffer_v no_o subject_n to_o be_v cite_v to_o rome_n without_o the_o king_n licence_n they_o admit_v no_o legate_n from_o the_o pope_n but_o mere_o upon_o courtesy_n and_o if_o any_o be_v admit_v he_o be_v to_o take_v his_o oath_n to_o do_v nothing_o derogatory_n to_o the_o king_n or_o his_o crown_n 1._o if_o any_o man_n do_v denounce_v the_o pope_n excommunication_n in_o england_n without_o the_o king_n consent_n or_o bring_v over_o the_o pope_n bull_n he_o forfeit_v all_o his_o good_n so_o the_o law_n of_o england_n do_v not_o allow_v the_o pope_n to_o cite_v or_o excommunicate_v a_o english_a subject_n nor_o dispose_v of_o a_o english_a benefice_n nor_o send_v a_o legate_n a_o latere_fw-la orso_fw-la much_o as_o a_o authoritative_a bull_n into_o england_n nor_o to_o re●eive_v a_o appeal_n out_o of_o england_n without_o the_o king_n licence_n but_o say_v he_o to_o limit_v a_o authority_n imply_v a_o admittance_n of_o it_o in_o case_n to_o which_o the_o rsstraint_n extend_v not_o this_o be_v not_o mere_o to_o limit_v a_o authority_n but_o to_o deny_v it_o what_o lawful_a jurisdiction_n can_v remain_v to_o he_o in_o england_n who_o be_v not_o permit_v by_o law_n to_o receive_v any_o appeal_n thence_o nor_o to_o send_v any_o citation_n or_o sentence_n thither_o nor_o execute_v any_o authority_n over_o a_o english_a subject_n either_o at_o rome_n by_o himself_o or_o in_o england_n by_o his_o deputy_n without_o licence_n that_o he_o exercise_v all_o these_o act_n at_o sometime_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n of_o it_o but_o he_o can_v not_o exercise_v they_o lawful_o without_o consent_n give_v we_o the_o same_o limitation_n which_o our_o ancestor_n always_o claim_v that_o no_o foreign_a authority_n shall_v be_v exercise_v in_o england_n without_o leave_v and_o then_o give_v the_o pope_n as_o much_o authority_n as_o you_o please_v volenti_fw-la non_fw-la fit_a injuria_fw-la consent_n take_v away_o error_n he_o be_v not_o wrong_v who_o give_v leave_v to_o another_o to_o wrong_v he_o he_o demand_v first_o be_v not_o those_o bawe_n in_o force_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o henry_n the_o eighths_n reign_n yes_o but_o it_o be_v no_o strange_a matter_n to_o explain_v or_o confirm_v or_o renew_v ancient_a law_n upon_o emergent_a and_o subsequent_a abuse_n as_o we_o see_v in_o magna_fw-la charta_fw-la the_o statute_n of_o proviso_n and_o many_o other_o statute_n second_o he_o ask_v whether_o we_o begin_v our_o religion_n there_o that_o be_v at_o that_o time_n when_o these_o ancient_a law_n be_v make_v no_o i_o have_v tell_v he_o former_o that_o these_o statute_n be_v only_a declarative_n what_o be_v the_o ancient_a common_a law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n we_o begin_v our_o religion_n from_o joseph_n of_o arimathea_n time_n before_o they_o have_v a_o church_n at_o rome_n but_o it_o be_v their_o constant_a use_n to_o make_v the_o least_o reformation_n to_o be_v a_o new_a religion_n last_o he_o enquire_v whether_o there_o be_v not_o equivolent_a law_n to_o these_o in_o france_n spain_n germany_n and_o italy_n itself_o and_o yet_o they_o be_v catholic_n and_o hold_v communication_n with_o the_o pope_n yes_o there_o be_v some_o such_o law_n in_o all_o these_o place_n by_o he_o mention_v perhaps_o not_o so_o many_o but_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o french_a church_n be_v much_o the_o same_o with_o the_o english_a 196._o as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o the_o vindication_n and_o therefore_o the_o pope_n friend_n do_v exclude_v france_n out_o of_o the_o number_n of_o these_o country_n which_o they_o term_v pay_v d'_fw-fr obedience_n loyal_a country_n what_o ●use_v some_o other_o country_n can_v make_v of_o the_o papacy_n more_o than_o we_o in_o england_n concern_v not_o i_o nor_o this_o present_a discourse_n and_o here_o to_o make_v his_o conclusion_n answerable_a to_o his_o preface_n in_o this_o section_n he_o cry_v out_o how_o ridiculous_a how_o impudent_a a_o manner_n of_o speak_v be_v this_o to_o force_v his_o reader_n to_o renounce_v their_o eye_n and_o
ear_n and_o all_o evidence_n nay_o reader_n it_o be_v not_o i_o that_o about_o to_o force_v thou_o to_o renounce_v thy_o eye_n or_o ear_n or_o thy_o evidence_n but_o it_o be_v he_o that_o be_v trouble_v for_o fear_n thou_o shall_v use_v thy_o eye_n and_o ear_n to_o look_v upon_o the_o evidence_n and_o therefore_o like_o the_o priest_n of_o cybele_n on_o purpose_n make_v all_o this_o noise_n to_o deaf_a thy_o ear_n lest_o thou_o shall_v hear_v the_o loud_a cry_n of_o our_o law_n sect._n 4._o the_o scope_n of_o my_o five_o chapter_n be_v to_o show_v that_o the_o britannique_a church_n that_o be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o britannique_a land_n be_v ever_o exempt_v from_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n for_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n and_o so_o ought_v to_o continue_v his_o first_o exception_n to_o this_o be_v how_o the_o britannique_a privilege_n do_v belong_v to_o we_o have_v we_o any_o title_n from_o the_o britannique_a church_n otherwise_o then_o by_o the_o saxon_a christian_n who_o only_o be_v our_o ancestor_n etc._n etc._n yes_o well_o enough_o first_o wales_n and_o cornwall_n have_v not_o only_o a_o local_a but_o a_o personal_a succession_n no_o man_n can_v doubt_v of_o their_o right_n to_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o britannique_a church_n second_o there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n for_o the_o scot_n and_o pict_n who_o be_v no_o more_o subject_v to_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n than_o the_o briton_n themselves_o all_o these_o put_v together_o britons_z scot_n and_o pict_n do_v possess_v about_o two_o three_o part_n of_o the_o britannique_a land_n after_o the_o saxon_a conquest_n be_v consummate_v three_o among_o the_o saxon_n themselves_o the_o great_a kingdom_n of_o mercia_n and_o north_n umberland_n be_v convert_v by_o the_o ancient_a scot_n and_o have_v their_o religion_n &_o ordination_n first_o from_o they_o afterward_o among_o themselves_o without_o any_o foreign_a dependence_n and_o so_o be_v as_o free_a as_o either_o briton_n or_o scot_n and_o aught_o to_o continue_v so_o four_o throughout_o the_o rest_n of_o england_n a_o world_n of_o british_a christian_n after_o the_o conquest_n do_v still_o live_v mix_v with_o the_o saxon_n such_o as_o they_o have_v no_o need_n to_o fear_v such_o as_o may_v be_v serviceable_a to_o they_o as_o it_o common_o fall_v h_o out_o in_o all_o conquest_n otherwise_o the_o saxon_n have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o people_n the_o six_o part_n of_o the_o land_n who_o can_v deny_v these_o poor_a conquer_a christian_n and_o their_o christian_a posterity_n though_o mix_v with_o saxon_n the_o just_a privilege_n of_o their_o ancestor_n last_o the_o saxon_a conquest_n give_v unto_o they_o as_o good_a title_n to_o the_o privilege_n as_o to_o the_o land_n of_o the_o briton_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v capable_a of_o they_o and_o so_o at_o their_o first_o conversion_n they_o be_v free_a and_o continue_v free_a &_o further_o than_o themselves_o please_v to_o consent_v aught_o to_o continue_v free_a for_o ever_o second_o he_o object_v that_o this_o pretend_a execution_n of_o the_o british_a church_n be_v false_a for_o nothing_o be_v more_o evident_a in_o history_n then_o that_o the_o british_a church_n admit_v appellation_n to_o rome_n at_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n before_o he_o can_v allege_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n he_o must_v renounce_v his_o divine_a institution_n of_o the_o papacy_n for_o that_o canon_n submit_v it_o to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o the_o father_n and_o ground_v it_o upon_o the_o memory_n of_o s._n peter_n not_o the_o institution_n of_o christ._n further_o how_o do_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o british_a bishop_n do_v assent_v to_o that_o canon_n this_o be_v mere_o presumption_n without_o any_o proof_n the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v no_o general_a council_n after_o all_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n be_v depart_v as_o they_o be_v before_o the_o make_n of_o that_o canon_n neither_o be_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n ever_o receive_v in_o england_n or_o incorporate_v into_o the_o english_a law_n and_o without_o such_o incorporation_n they_o do_v not_o bind_v english_a subject_n last_o this_o canon_n be_v contradict_v by_o the_o great_a general_a council_n of_o chalcidon_n which_o our_o church_n receive_v there_o appear_v not_o the_o least_o footstep_n of_o any_o papal_a jurisdiction_n exercise_v in_o england_n by_o elutheri_n n_n but_o the_o contrary_a for_o he_o refer_v the_o legislative_a part_n to_o king_n leucius_fw-la and_o the_o british_a bishop_n and_o if_o pope_n coelestin_n have_v send_v s._n german_a into_o britain_n to_o free_v the_o britain_n from_o pelagianisme_n or_o convert_v some_o of_o the_o scot_n by_o paladius_fw-la as_o we_o have_v very_o little_a reason_n to_o believe_v either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o yet_o it_o make_v nothing_o at_o all_o for_o the_o exercise_n of_o any_o papal_a jurisdiction_n in_o britain_n preach_v and_o convert_v &_o baptise_v &_o ordain_v be_v act_n of_o the_o key_n of_o order_n not_o of_o jurisdiction_n but_o these_o instance_n and_o whatsoever_o he_o have_v in_o answer_n to_o the_o british_a observation_n of_o easter_n be_v press_v more_o home_n by_o the_o bishop_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o clear_o satisfy_v in_o my_o reply_n to_o he_o ●_o whither_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n but_o say_v he_o that_o which_o be_v main_o to_o the_o purpose_n be_v that_o since_o this_o privilege_n he_o mean_v the_o supremacy_n descend_v upon_o the_o pope_n as_o successor_n to_o s._n peter_n how_o far_o it_o be_v execute_v may_v be_v unknown_a but_o that_o it_o be_v due_a none_o can_v be_v ignorant_a word_n be_v but_o wind_n when_o they_o be_v utter_o destitute_a of_o all_o manner_n of_o proof_n we_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v successor_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o if_o he_o do_v not_o forfeit_v it_o by_o his_o own_o fault_n we_o be_v ready_a to_o pay_v he_o such_o respect_n as_o be_v due_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o a_o apostolical_a church_n but_o for_o any_o spiritual_a monarchy_n or_o universal_a jurisdiction_n we_o know_v no_o manner_n of_o title_n that_o he_o have_v his_o pretence_n be_v more_o from_o phocas_n the_o usurper_n then_o from_o st._n peter_n and_o here_o though_o i_o know_v not_o this_o hereditary_a privilege_n of_o the_o pope_n descend_v from_o st._n peter_n there_o be_v no_o knowledge_n of_o that_o which_o have_v no_o be_v and_o the_o burden_n of_o prove_v it_o lie_v upon_o he_o yet_o he_o tax_v i_o for_o leave_v it_o and_o spend_v my_o time_n about_o the_o pope_n patriarchal_a power_n i_o observe_v how_o ready_a they_o be_v all_o to_o decline_v all_o manner_n of_o discourse_n concern_v the_o pope_n patriarchal_a power_n and_o yet_o for_o a_o long_a time_n it_o be_v the_o fair_a flower_n in_o their_o garland_n i_o know_v not_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n but_o we_o may_v well_o conjecture_v because_o they_o find_v that_o their_o spiritual_a monarchy_n and_o this_o patriarchal_a dignity_n be_v inconsistent_a the_o one_o with_o the_o other_o in_o the_o same_o subject_n they_o may_v as_o well_o make_v a_o king_n to_o be_v a_o sheriff_n of_o a_o shire_n or_o a_o precedent_n of_o a_o particular_a province_n within_o his_o own_o kingdom_n as_o make_v a_o spiritual_a monarch_n to_o be_v a_o patriarch_n and_o yet_o a_o patriarch_n he_o be_v and_o so_o always_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v and_o they_o can_v deny_v it_o among_o other_o proof_n of_o the_o british_a liberty_n i_o produce_v the_o answer_n of_o dionothu_n to_o austin_n no_o obscure_a person_n as_o he_o make_v he_o but_o a_o man_n famous_a for_o his_o learning_n abbot_n and_o rector_n of_o the_o famous_a university_n of_o bangor_n wherein_o there_o be_v at_o that_o time_n above_o 2100_o monk_n and_o student_n at_o the_o very_o close_o of_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n that_o he_o know_v no_o obedience_n due_a to_o he_o who_o they_o call_v the_o pope_n but_o obedience_n of_o love_n and_o that_o under_o god_n they_o be_v to_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o caer●eon_n this_o record_n he_o call_v a_o piece_n of_o a_o wear_v welsh_a manuscript_n and_o a_o manifest_a forgery_n of_o a_o counterfeit_n knave_n and_o to_o prove_v it_o counterfeit_n he_o produce_v three_o reason_n first_o that_o the_o word_n pope_n without_o any_o addition_n be_v put_v for_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o if_o our_o great_a antiquary_n can_v show_v in_o these_o day_n he_o will_v confess_v himself_o surprise_v i_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o trouble_v any_o of_o our_o great_a antiquary_n about_o it_o it_o will_v suffice_v to_o commit_v he_o and_o his_o friend_n cardinal_n bellarmine_n together_o about_o it_o i_o see_v friend_n be_v not_o always_o of_o one_o mind_n 16._o thus_o he_o cu_z absolute_a pronunciatur_fw-la papa_n ipse_fw-la solus_fw-la intelligitur_fw-la ut_fw-la patet_fw-la ex_fw-la confilio_fw-la chalcedonensi_fw-la
alan_n apol._n c._n 4._o p._n 59_o sound_v the_o schism_n p_o 103_o b._n denique_fw-la nulla_fw-la in_o re_fw-la a_o side_n catholica_fw-la discessit_fw-la nisi_fw-la libidinis_fw-la &_o luxury_n causa_fw-la sect._n 4._o a_o full_a justification_n of_o our_o penal_a law_n l_o 3_o l._n 1._o de_fw-fr orator_n leg._n 12._o tall_a aen_n gaz._n in_o theo._n ph●asium_fw-la cont_n arist●c●aetem_fw-la &_o timocratem_n sand_n de_fw-fr schis_n l._n 1._o cam_z annal_n eliz._n l._n 2._o p._n 7._o id._n l._n 2._o p._n 98._o id_fw-la l_o 4._o p._n 145_o &_o p._n 150._o p_o 164._o com'd_a annal_n l_o 3_o p._n 11_o ibid._n l._n 3._o p._n 44._o l._n 3._o p._n 74._o camd._n an._n l._n 3._o p._n 132_o apol._n marc._n p._n 329._o camd._n an._n l_o 3._o p._n 11._o apr._n 1_o &_o el._n 23._o ex_fw-la apol._n mart._n edm._n camp_n epist_n ad_fw-la conc._n r._n aug._n pag._n 127._o camb._n annal_n eliz_n a_o 1581._o camb._n annal._n eliz_n a_o 1581._o sect._n 1_o the_o king_n of_o england_n always_o political_a head_n of_o the_o english_a church_n not_o only_o act_n of_o papal_a power_n but_o the_o power_n itself_o contrary_a to_o our_o law_n jurisdiction_n be_v from_o ordination_n but_o prince_n apply_v the_o matter_n jurisdidiction_n enlarge_v and_o fortify_v with_o coercive_a power_n by_o prince_n henry_n the_o eight_o not_o exempt_a from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n an._n 25._o h._n 8._o c._n xxi_o sect._n 2._o saint_n wilfrid_n spel._n conc_fw-fr an._n 705._o bed_n l._n 5._o ecc._n hist_o c._n 20._o st._n austin_n and_o his_o ●_o fellow_n bed_n l._n 2._o c_o 4._o bed_n l._n 1._o e._n 25._o see_v speed_n l._n 6_o c._n 9_o 11.22_o fed._n l._n 1._o c._n 29._o bed_n l._n 2._o c._n 2._o bed_n l._n 2._o c._n 4._o st._n melit_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 4._o ibidem_fw-la bed_n l._n 3._o c_o 29._o a_o a●ch_a b●shop_n send_v from_o rome_n l._n 4_o c._n 1._o bed_n l._n 3._o c_o 25._o st._n peter_n po●ter_v of_o heaven_n camd._n brit._n p._n 165._o sy_n peter_n superior_a to_o saint_n paul_n l._n 2._o flor._n c._n 11._o st._n peter_n a_o monarch_n bed_n l._n 4_o c._n 18._o john_n the_o precentor_n malm._n l_o 2d_o reg._n c_o 9_o bishoprick●_n erect_v in_o england_n by_o the_o pope_n answer_v will_v malme_n l._n 1._o reg._n c._n 6._o l._n 2d_o flo●_n c._n 11._o edgar_z apud_fw-la ealred_n in_fw-la orati_fw-la ad_fw-la episcopos_fw-la wither_v a_o put_fw-mi speim_fw-ge conc_fw-fr p._n 192_o clergyman_n not_o exempt_v from_o secular_a judge_n plat._n in_o politico_n ib●dem_fw-la 〈◊〉_d ser._n 25_o in_o 14_o c_o 〈◊〉_d rome_n have_v no_o certain●y_n of_o i●tallibiliti●_n bell._n de_fw-fr ro._n pont._n l._n 4._o ●_o 4._o aclred_n de_fw-fr vita_fw-la &_o mirac_n edw._n conf._n superseription_n to_o pope_n 2_o cor._n 11._o 28._o aclred_n ibidem_fw-la walse_v a●_n 133_o how_o the_o pope_n preside_v above_o all_o creature_n w●lsi●g_v ●_o a_o 1343._o 25_o e._n 3._o wals._n an._n 1343._o wals._fw-la ibidem_fw-la aust._n ep._n 50._o sect._n 2._o patriarch_n independent_a upon_o a_o single_a superior_n socrat._v l._n 2._o ●_o 11_o cypr._n epist._n l._n 1._o ep._n 3._o conc._n aphasia_n part_n 1._o act_n 7._o b●itain_n enjoy_v the_o cyprian_a privilege_n math_n paris_n in_o h_n 3._o a_o 1238._o itine●az_n ca●●b_n l_o 2._o c_o 1._o bellarmine_n ma●●s_v the_o apostle_n all_o equal_a in_o power_n i._o 4_o de_fw-fr rom._n pont._n c._n 23._o l._n 4_o de_fw-fr ro._n pont_n c._n 16._o l_o 1._o de_fw-fr ro_n pont._n c._n 12._o cypr._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la cont._n jovin_n l._n 1._o c._n 14._o how_o peter_n head_n of_o the_o rest_n a_o superiority_n of_o order_n be_v sufficient_a to_o prevent_v schism_n the_o rest_n pastor_n as_o well_o as_o peter_n de_fw-fr rom._n pont._n l._n 4._o c._n 25._o l._n 1._o c._n 9_o sect._n 2._o universality_n a_o incommunicable_a qualification_n of_o the_o apostle_n 9_o c._n 8._o s._n 2._o bel_n l._n 4._o de_fw-fr ro._n pont_n c●4_n ●4_z all_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n be_v not_o derive_v from_o the_o pope_n sect._n 3_o the_o chair_n of_o st._n peter_n not_o fix_v to_o rome_n by_o divine_a right_n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr pont._n ro._n c._n 12._o bel._n de_fw-fr pont._n ro._n l._n ●●_o c._n 23._o io_n 21.18_o bel_n de_fw-fr r●_n po●_n 2._o c._n 12._o ibidem_fw-la nor_o by_o humane_a right_a sect._n 4._o gild._n in_o prol._n whether_o st._n peter_n convert_v britain_n onuph_n of_o eleutherius_fw-la his_fw-la send_v into_o engand_fw-mi and_o victor_n into_o scotland_n ninian_n bed_n l._n 3●_n c._n 4._o palladius_n and_o s._n patrick_n bed_n in_o vi●a_o st._n patri●_n l._n 1._o germanus_n and_o lupus_n prosp._n in_o chron._n constant_a de_fw-fr vita_fw-la germ._n l._n 1._o bed_n l_o 1._o c._n 17._o baron_fw-fr a_o 429._o constant_a l._n c._n 19_o idem_fw-la c._n 23_o austin_n dubritius_fw-la st._n samson_n vind._n p._n 150._o pol._n virg._n l_o 13_o hist._n angl._n iti●_n camb_n l._n 1._o c._n 1._o r●g_v ●●ved_v an._n anno_fw-la 1●99_n king_n james._n matrix_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la sect._n 5._o bed_n l._n 2._o c._n 2._o ●ed_a l._n 3._o c._n 25._o vind._n p._n 115_o 116._o aqui._n ●_o 〈◊〉_d 2.2_o quaest_n 88_o art_n 2._o &_o 10._o a_o king_n have_v all_o power_n needful_a for_o the_o preservation_n of_o his_o kingdom_n a_o respective_a necessity_n be_v a_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o a_o reformation_n act._n 15.28_o act._n 21_o 20_o senec._n our_o reformation_n be_v necessary_a hall_n 24._o hen._n 8._o sol_fw-la 205._o the_o regiment_n of_o the_o church_n conform_v to_o that_o of_o the_o commonwealth_n conc_fw-fr chalc_n c._n 11._o vel_fw-la 12._o dist._n 99_o in_o gain_n or_o loss_n all_o circumstance_n to_o be_v consider_v 1_o pet._n 1.7_o our_o reformation_n not_o contrary_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o general_a counsel_n novel_a 11_o &_o 131._o p._n 127._o but_o in_o pur_fw-mi suance_n of_o they_o king_n henry_n divorce_n lawful_a but_o no_o ground_n of_o the_o reformation_n hall_n in_o hen._n 8._o a_o 20._o sol_fw-la 180._o b._n &_o a_o 21_o f._n 182._o all_o the_o cardinal_n of_o rome_n oppose_v the_o dispensation_n hall_n an._n 1._o h._n 8._o acworth_n emt_fw-mi sand_n 1_o 2._o c_o 13._o &_o 14_o hall_n an._n 19_o h_o 8._o f●l_n 161._o sand_n de_fw-fr schism_n p._n 11._o &_o 12._o steph._n wint._n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la obedientia_fw-la apnd_v gild._n t._n 1._o p._n 721._o ld._n cherb_n in_o hen_n 8._o a_o 1530._o p._n 303._o sufficere_fw-la sant_z alioqui_fw-la debuisset_fw-la causae_fw-la ipsius_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o parliament_n not_o force_v idem_fw-la p._n 334._o anno._n 1530._o de_fw-fr vera_fw-la obedien_fw-mi tia_fw-la ib●dem_fw-la p._n 719._o king_n henry_n do_v not_o act_v against_o conscience_n c_o 3_o s._n 5._o ld._n cherb_n h._n 8._o a_o 1530._o p._n 305._o consilio_fw-la divino_fw-la sand._n the_o schism_n p._n 102._o lord_n cherb_n fol._n 398._o p_o 128._o our_o separation_n from_o the_o papacy_n be_v not_o for_o the_o fault_n of_o pope_n but_o of_o the_o papacy_n itself_o luk._n 13.7_o whether_o pope_n have_v do_v more_o good_a or_o hurt_n to_o england_n not_o material_a 2_o king_n 18.4_o sect._n 2._o conc._n turor_fw-la r●sp_n ad_fw-la art_n 3._o 48._o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o withdraw_v obedience_n from_o papal_a authority_n corrupt_v prince_n the_o last_o judge_n of_o the_o injury_n do_v to_o their_o subject_n by_o pope_n bish._n epist._n ad_fw-la reg._n jocob_n p._n 11._o rom._n 13.1_o &_o 2._o prov._n ●_o 15_o kingly_a authority_n from_o god_n not_o papal_a sect._n 3_o the_o ground_n of_o our_o separation_n an._n 30._o sect._n 4._o the_o pope_n new_a article_n of_o faith_n a_o just_a cause_n of_o separation_n the_o de●●ining_n of_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o sacrament_n a_o just_a cause_n of_o separation_n odoardus_fw-la barlosa_fw-la forma_fw-la celebrandi_fw-la etc._n etc._n papist_n right_o heir_n of_o the_o donatist_n optat._n l._n 2._o whether_o protestant_n and_o papist_n differ_v in_o essential_o psal._n 139.16_o sect._n 5._o papist_n acknowledge_v possibility_n of_o our_o salvation_n as_o much_o as_o we_o of_o they_o sect._n 6._o our_o separation_n only_o from_o error_n math._n 15.9_o we_o arrogate_v to_o ourselves_o no_o new_a church_n etc._n etc._n whether_o our_o religion_n be_v the_o same_o with_o they_o or_o not_o we_o be_v no_o schismatic_n quaest_n 14._o the_o side_n a●t_fw-la 1._o justification_n by_o special_a fa●●h_n no_o a●●icle_n of_o our_o church_n probl._n 22._o probl._n 26._o our_o negative_n no_o article_n of_o faith_n sect._n 7._o a_o implicit_a submission_n to_o the_o catholic_n church_n sufficient_a to_o salvation_n 〈…〉_z papist_n agree_v not_o what_o be_v their_o infallible_a proponent_n aust._n epist_n 48._o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n from_o universal_a communion_n not_o right_a belief_n c._n 2_o sect_n 6._o more_o dangerous_a to_o exclude_v then_o to_o include_v other_o in_o our_o communion_n the_o politic_a supremacy_n of_o prince_n in_o
and_o near_o establish_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n we_o have_v renounce_v their_o patriarchall_a power_n over_o we_o because_o they_o never_o exercise_v it_o in_o britain_n for_o the_o fi●st_n six_o hundred_o year_n nor_o can_v exercise_v it_o in_o after_o age_n without_o manifest_a usurpation_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o ecumenical_a council_n of_o ephesus_n yea_o because_o they_o themselves_o wave_v it_o and_o implicit_o quit_v it_o present_o after_o the_o six_o hundred_o year_n disuse_n in_o law_n forfeit_v a_o office_n as_o well_o as_o abuse_v but_o we_o have_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o pope_n or_o papacy_n as_o they_o be_v regulate_v by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o father_n we_o look_v upon_o their_o universal_a roman_a church_n as_o a_o upstart_n innovation_n and_o a_o contradiction_n in_o adjecto_fw-la we_o find_v no_o footstep_n of_o any_o such_o thing_n throughout_o the_o primitive_a time_n indeed_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v sometime_o be_v call_v ecumenical_a bishop_n so_o have_v the_o other_o patriarch_n for_o their_o universal_a care_n and_o presidency_n in_o general_a counsel_n who_o never_o pretend_v to_o any_o such_o universality_n of_o power_n but_o for_o all_o ancient_a church_n grecian_a armenian_a ethiopian_a etc._n etc._n none_o exclude_v not_o the_o roman_n itself_o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o forsake_v they_o that_o we_o make_v the_o scripture_n interpret_v by_o their_o joint_a belief_n and_o practice_n to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o reformation_n and_o wherein_o their_o successor_n have_v not_o swerve_v from_o the_o example_n of_o their_o predecessor_n we_o maintain_v a_o strict_a communion_n with_o they_o only_o in_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n and_o such_o indifferent_a thing_n we_o use_v the_o the_o liberty_n of_o a_o free_a church_n to_o choose_v out_o such_o as_o be_v most_o proper_a for_o ourselves_o and_o most_o conducible_a to_o those_o end_n for_o which_o they_o be_v first_o institute_v that_o be_v to_o be_v advancement_n of_o order_n modesty_n decency_n gravity_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n to_o be_v adjument_n to_o attention_n and_o devotion_n furtherance_n of_o edification_n help_v of_o memory_n exercise_n of_o faith_n the_o the_o leaf_n that_o preserve_v the_o fruit_n the_o sh●ll_a that_o preserve_v the_o kernel_n of_o religion_n from_o contempt_n and_o all_o this_o with_o due_a moderation_n so_o as_o neither_o to_o render_v religion_n sordid_a and_o sluttish_a nor_o yet_o light_a and_o garish_a but_o comely_a and_o venerable_a last_o sacrament_n for_o communion_n in_o sacrament_n we_o have_v forsake_v no_o sacrament_n either_o institute_v by_o christ_n or_o receive_v by_o the_o primitive_a christian_n we_o refuse_v no_o communion_n with_o any_o catholic_a christian_n at_o this_o day_n and_o particular_o with_o those_o ancient_a church_n which_o he_o mention_n though_o we_o may_v be_v and_o have_v be_v misrepresent_v one_o unto_o another_o yea_o though_o the_o sacrament_n may_v be_v administer_v in_o some_o of_o they_o not_o without_o manifest_a imperfection_n whilst_o sinful_a duty_n be_v not_o obtrude_v upon_o we_o as_o condition_n of_o communion_n under_o this_o caution_n we_o still_o retain_v communion_n in_o sacrament_n with_o roman_a catholic_n if_o any_o person_n be_v baptize_v or_o admit_v into_o holy_a order_n in_o their_o church_n we_o baptize_v they_o not_o we_o ordain_v they_o not_o again_o wherein_o then_o have_v we_o forsake_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o sacrament_n not_o in_o their_o ancient_a communion_n of_o genuine_a sacrament_n but_o in_o their_o septinary_a number_n and_o suppositious_a sacrament_n which_o yet_o we_o retain_v for_o the_o most_o part_n as_o useful_a and_o religious_a rite_n but_o not_o under_o the_o notion_n of_o sacrament_n not_o in_o their_o sacrament_n but_o in_o their_o abuse_n and_o sinful_a injunction_n in_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o their_o administration_n of_o they_o in_o a_o tongue_n unknown_a where_o the_o people_n can_v say_v amen_o to_o the_o prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n of_o the_o church_n contrary_a to_o saint_n paul_n as_o their_o detain_v the_o cup_n from_o the_o laity_n contrary_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n 26.27_o drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o that_o be_v not_o all_o the_o apostle_n only_o for_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o consecrate_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n and_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o school_n and_o practice_v of_o their_o church_n as_o to_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n at_o that_o time_n be_v but_o in_o the_o condition_n of_o layman_n as_o their_o injunction_n to_o all_o communicant_n to_o adore_v not_o only_a christ_n in_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o which_o we_o do_v ready_o assent_v but_o to_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n itself_o and_o last_o as_o their_o double_a matter_n and_o form_n in_o the_o ordination_n of_o a_o priest_n never_o know_v in_o the_o church_n for_o above_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ._n these_o and_o such_o like_a abuse_n be_v the_o only_a thing_n which_o we_o do_v forsake_v so_o as_o i_o may_v true_o say_v non_fw-la tellus_fw-la cymbam_fw-la tellurem_fw-la cymba_fw-la reliquit_fw-la it_o be_v not_o we_o that_o do_v forsake_v they_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o their_o sacrament_n but_o it_o be_v their_o sacrament_n that_o do_v forsake_v we_o and_o yet_o we_o do_v not_o censure_v they_o for_o these_o innovation_n in_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o the_o like_a nor_o thrust_v they_o out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o provide_v for_o ourselves_o advise_v they_o as_o brethren_n and_o so_o leave_v they_o to_o stand_v or_o fall_v to_o their_o own_o master_n so_o on_o our_o part_n there_o be_v a_o reformation_n but_o no_o separation_n his_o three_o point_n be_v 3_o that_o protestant_n vary_v in_o give_v the_o pretend_a just_a cause_n of_o their_o separation_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o at_o the_o first_o their_o only_a cause_n be_v the_o abuse_n of_o some_o that_o preach_v indulgence_n since_o some_o other_o give_v the_o adoration_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n or_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n other_o give_v the_o oath_n make_v by_o pius_n the_o 4_o the_o which_o they_o call_v a_o new_a creed_n other_o other_o cause_n which_o variety_n be_v a_o certain_a sign_n of_o their_o uncertainty_n of_o any_o true_a just_a cause_n of_o their_o separation_n that_o the_o pardoner_n and_o preacher_n of_o indulgence_n and_o the_o envy_n of_o other_o order_n and_o the_o passionate_a heat_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n tange_fw-la montes_fw-la &_o fumigabunt_fw-la touch_v the_o high_a mountain_n and_o they_o will_v smoke_v do_v contribute_v much_o to_o the_o breach_n of_o this_o part_n of_o christendom_n be_v confess_o true_a but_o it_o be_v not_o only_o the_o abuse_n of_o some_o preacher_n of_o indulgence_n protestant_n but_o much_o more_o the_o abuse_n of_o indulgence_n themselves_z which_o we_o complain_v of_o that_o a_o treasury_n shall_v be_v compose_v of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o suffering_n and_o supererogatory_n work_v of_o the_o saint_n to_o be_v dispose_v by_o the_o pope_n for_o money_n what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o mingle_v heaven_n and_o earth_n together_o the_o imperfect_a work_n of_o man_n with_o the_o sacrify_v blood_n of_o christ_n neither_o be_v it_o the_o doctrine_n and_o abuse_n of_o indulgence_n alone_o but_o the_o injunction_n to_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n also_o and_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_a and_o the_o new_a creed_n of_o pius_n the_o 4_o the_o or_o the_o new_a article_n since_o comprise_v in_o that_o creed_n and_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o pope_n by_o divine_a right_n and_o sundry_a other_o abuse_n and_o innovation_n all_o put_v together_o which_o give_v just_a cause_n to_o some_o protestant_n to_o separate_v themselves_o so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v active_a in_o the_o separation_n but_o we_o in_o england_n be_v first_o chase_v away_o by_o the_o pope_n bull_n if_o these_o abuse_n be_v perhaps_o not_o discover_v or_o at_o least_o not_o plead_v all_o at_o once_o what_o wonder_n be_v it_o dies_fw-la diei_fw-la eructat_fw-la verbum_fw-la &_o nox_fw-la nocti_fw-la indicat_fw-la scientiam_fw-la 19_o day_n unto_o day_n utter_v speech_n and_o night_n unto_o night_n show_v knowledge_n his_o four_o point_n which_o he_o say_v be_v much_o to_o be_v note_v be_v reduce_v by_o himself_o to_o a_o syllogism_n whosoever_o separate_v themselves_o in_o substance_n that_o be_v in_o essential_o from_o the_o substance_n of_o a_o catholic_n and_o true_a church_n in_o substance_n be_v true_a schismatic_n but_o protestant_n have_v separate_v themselves_o in_o substance_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o be_v a_o catholic_n and_o true_a church_n in_o substance_n therefore_o prostant_n be_v true_a schismatic_n his_o proposition_n be_v prove_v by_o he_o because_o the_o substance_n of_o thing_n do_v consist_v in_o indivisibili_fw-la and_o the_o change_n
just_a and_o if_o the_o subject_n will_v not_o obey_v his_o blood_n be_v upon_o his_o own_o head_n the_o only_a question_n be_v whether_o there_o be_v at_o that_o time_n not_o only_o a_o pretend_a but_o a_o real_a necessity_n to_o make_v those_o law_n which_o they_o call_v sanguinary_a or_o bloody_a for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o common_a wealth_n this_o be_v the_o case_n between_o the_o romanist_n and_o we_o upon_o these_o two_o hinge_n this_o controversy_n be_v move_v then_o to_o leave_v the_o thesis_n and_o come_v unto_o the_o hypothesis_n and_o to_o show_v that_o at_o that_o time_n there_o be_v a_o real_a necessity_n for_o the_o make_n of_o those_o law_n first_o let_v it_o be_v observe_v that_o after_o the_o secession_n of_o the_o english_a church_n from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n the_o succeed_a pope_n have_v for_o the_o most_o part_n look_v upon_o england_n with_o a_o very_a ill_a eye_n 1._o witness_v that_o terrible_a and_o unparalleled_a excommunication_n and_o interdiction_n of_o england_n a_o deprivation_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o former_o mention_v publish_v at_o dunkirk_n because_o they_o dare_v bring_v it_o no_o near_o witness_v the_o bull_n of_o anathematization_n and_o deprivation_n by_o pius_n the_o five_o against_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o all_o her_o adherent_n 7._o absolve_v all_o her_o subject_n from_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n without_o so_o much_o as_o a_o admonition_n precede_v witness_v the_o pope_n negotiation_n with_o the_o english_a spanish_a french_a and_o portughese_n to_o have_v queen_n elizabeth_n take_v away_o by_o murder_n and_o the_o frame_n of_o the_o government_n alter_v publish_v at_o rome_n by_o hieronimo_n catena_n secretary_n to_o cardinal_n alexandrino_n in_o the_o time_n and_o with_o the_o privilege_n of_o sixtus_n the_o five_o witness_v the_o logantine_n authority_n give_v to_o sander_n and_o the_o hollow_a banner_n send_v with_o he_o and_o allen_n two_o romish_a priest_n to_o countenance_v the_o earl_n of_o desmond_n in_o his_o rebellion_n 98._o and_o the_o phoenix_n plume_v send_v to_o terowen_n to_o encourage_v he_o likewise_o in_o his_o rebellion_n 150._o and_o a_o plenary_a indulgence_n for_o he_o and_o all_o his_o adherent_n and_o assistant_n from_o clement_n the_o eight_o last_o witness_v the_o two_o brief_n send_v by_o the_o same_o pope_n to_o exclude_v king_n james_n from_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n 164._o unless_o he_o will_v take_v a_o oath_n to_o promote_v the_o roman_a catholic_a interest_n this_o be_v not_o all_o in_o the_o second_o place_n the_o pope_n to_o have_v the_o great_a influence_n upon_o england_n do_v themselves_o find_v or_o conserve_v several_a college_n or_o seminary_n of_o english_a priest_n at_o rome_n at_o rheims_n at_o douai_n where_o the_o english_a youth_n be_v train_v up_o more_o for_o the_o advantage_n of_o the_o pope_n than_o of_o their_o prince_n and_o native_a country_n what_o those_o principle_n be_v which_o be_v then_o infuse_v into_o they_o i_o have_v neither_o mean_n at_o present_a nor_o in_o truth_n desire_v to_o inquire_v because_o i_o hope_v that_o at_o this_o day_n they_o be_v disclaim_v by_o all_o or_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o moderate_a person_n of_o those_o society_n only_o for_o the_o justification_n of_o my_o native_a country_n give_v i_o leave_v to_o set_v down_o some_o of_o they_o in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o former_a learned_a historiographer_n suspicion_n also_o be_v daily_o raise_v by_o the_o great_a number_n of_o priest_n creep_v more_o and_o more_o into_o england_n 11_o who_o privy_o feel_v man_n mind_n spread_v abroad_o that_o prince_n excommunicate_a be_v to_o be_v depose_v and_o whisper_v in_o corner_n that_o such_o prince_n as_o profess_v not_o the_o roman_a religion_n have_v forfeit_v their_o title_n and_o regal_a authority_n that_o those_o man_n which_o have_v enter_v into_o holy_a order_n be_v by_o a_o certain_a ecclesiastical_a freedom_n exempt_v from_o all_o jurisdiction_n of_o prince_n and_o not_o bind_v by_o their_o law_n nor_o aught_o to_o reverence_v their_o majesty_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v supreme_a authority_n and_o most_o full_a power_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n yea_o even_o in_o temporal_a matter_n and_o that_o the_o magistrate_n of_o england_n be_v no_o lawful_a magistrate_n and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v account_v for_o magistrate_n yea_o that_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o do_v by_o the_o queen_n authority_n from_o the_o time_n that_o the_o bull_n declaratory_a of_o pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la be_v publish_v be_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o man_n altogether_o void_a and_o to_o be_v esteem_v nothing_o and_o some_o of_o they_o dissemble_v not_o that_o they_o be_v return_v into_o england_n with_o no_o other_o intent_n then_o by_o reconcile_n in_o confession_n to_o absolve_v every_o one_o in_o particular_a from_o all_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o queen_n judge_v how_o such_o emissaty_n deserve_v to_o be_v welcome_v into_o a_o kingdom_n more_o may_v be_v add_v but_o this_o itself_o be_v enough_o or_o too_o much_o last_o view_v all_o the_o treason_n and_o rebellion_n that_o be_v in_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n and_o see_v from_o what_o source_n they_o do_v spring_v parson_n propose_v to_o papist_n the_o depose_n of_o the_o queen_n so_o far_o forth_o that_o some_o of_o they_o thought_n to_o have_v deliver_v he_o into_o the_o magistrate_n hand_n and_o write_v a_o book_n under_o the_o name_n of_o doleman_n to_o entitle_v the_o infanta_n of_o spain_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n of_o sanders_n i_o have_v speak_v former_o only_o let_v i_o add_v this_o that_o when_o he_o be_v find_v dead_a they_o find_v in_o his_o pouch_n oration_n and_o epistle_n to_o confirm_v the_o rebel_n with_o promise_n of_o assistance_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o other_o parr_n confess_v that_o that_o which_o final_o settle_v he_o in_o his_o treasonable_a purpose_n 74._o to_o kill_v the_o queen_n be_v the_o read_n of_o allens_n book_n that_o prince_n excommunicate_v for_o heresy_n be_v to_o be_v deprive_v of_o life_n ballard_n be_v himself_o a_o priest_n of_o the_o seminary_n of_o rheims_n see_v his_o conspiracy_n i_o pass_v by_o the_o commotion_n raise_v in_o scotland_n by_o bruce_n creiton_n and_o hay_z 132_o squire_n accuse_v walpoole_n for_o put_v he_o upon_o it_o to_o poison_v the_o queen_n i_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o john_n nicholas_n nor_o the_o testimony_n of_o eliot_n mention_v in_o their_o own_o apology_n because_o they_o be_v not_o of_o undoubted_a faith_n 329._o this_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o when_o campian_n be_v interrogated_a before_o his_o death_n whether_o queen_n elizabeth_n be_v a_o lawful_a and_o rightful_a queen_n he_o refuse_v to_o answer_v and_o be_v ask_v if_o the_o pope_n shall_v send_v force_n against_o the_o queen_n whether_o he_o will_v take_v part_n with_o the_o queen_n or_o the_o pope_n he_o open_o profess_v and_o testify_v under_o his_o hand_n that_o he_o will_v stand_v for_o the_o pope_n 11._o the_o same_o author_n add_v that_o his_o fellow_n be_v examine_v in_o like_a manner_n either_o refuse_v to_o answer_v or_o give_v such_o ambiguous_a and_o prevaricatory_a answer_n that_o some_o ingenuous_a catholic_n begin_v to_o suspect_v that_o they_o foster_v some_o treachery_n lay_v all_o these_o together_o their_o disloyal_a answer_n their_o seditious_a tenet_n so_o many_o treacherous_a attempt_n so_o many_o open_a rebellion_n so_o many_o deposition_n and_o deprivation_n and_o exclusion_n so_o many_o book_n brimful_a of_o prodigious_a treason_n at_o such_o a_o time_n when_o the_o seditious_a opinion_n of_o that_o party_n be_v in_o their_o zenith_n when_o seditious_a person_n crowd_v over_o daily_o in_o such_o number_n when_o the_o heir_n apparent_a of_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n be_v a_o roman_n catholic_n and_o let_v any_o reasonable_a man_n judge_n whether_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n have_v not_o just_a cause_n of_o fear_n whether_o they_o be_v not_o necessitate_v to_o provide_v nequid_fw-la detrimenti_fw-la caperet_fw-la respublica_fw-la that_o the_o commonwealth_n shall_v sustain_v no_o loss_n whether_o our_o statesman_n who_o do_v then_o sit_v at_o the_o stern_a be_v not_o oblige_v to_o their_o prince_n and_o to_o their_o country_n to_o provide_v by_o all_o mean_v possible_a for_o the_o security_n of_o their_o prince_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o their_o country_n which_o can_v not_o be_v do_v at_o that_o time_n without_o the_o exclusion_n of_o such_o bigot_n and_o bowtifeus_fw-la from_fw-la among_o they_o nor_o they_o be_v possible_o exclude_v but_o by_o such_o severe_a law_n these_o be_v the_o very_a reason_n give_v in_o the_o edict_n itself_o mart._n that_o it_o do_v plain_o appear_v to_o her_o majesty_n and_o her_o council_n by_o many_o examination_n by_o their_o own_o letter_n and_o confession_n and_o by_o the_o actual_a conspiracy_n of_o the_o like_a
person_n send_v into_o ireland_n by_o the_o pope_n that_o the_o end_n and_o scope_n of_o send_v they_o into_o her_o majesty_n dominion_n be_v to_o prepare_v the_o subject_n to_o assist_v foreign_a invader_n to_o excite_v the_o people_n to_o rebellion_n and_o to_o deprive_v her_o majesty_n of_o her_o crown_n and_o dignity_n and_o life_n itself_o yet_o may_v we_o not_o accuse_v all_o for_o the_o fault_n of_o some_o though_o many_o of_o they_o who_o be_v breed_v in_o those_o seminary_n be_v pensioner_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o king_n of_o spain_n or_o the_o duke_n of_o guise_n all_o which_o at_o that_o time_n be_v in_o open_a hostility_n with_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n be_v it_o not_o lawful_a to_o forbid_v subject_n to_o be_v breed_v in_o a_o enemy_n country_n or_o to_o turn_v their_o pensioner_n or_o if_o they_o do_v go_v out_o of_o themselves_o to_o exclude_v they_o from_o their_o native_a soil_n yet_o in_o other_o place_n and_o it_o may_v be_v in_o those_o college_n also_o many_o other_o preserve_v their_o principle_n of_o loyalty_n at_o the_o same_o time_n doctor_n bishop_n one_o of_o the_o roman_a communion_n write_v a_o book_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o constitution_n obtrude_v upon_o the_o world_n under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lateran_n council_n upon_o which_o the_o pope_n authority_n of_o depose_v prince_n and_o absolve_a subject_n from_o their_o allegiance_n be_v found_v be_v not_o decree_v by_o the_o father_n nor_o ever_o admit_v in_o england_n but_o be_v a_o private_a decree_n of_o pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o if_o all_o his_o fellow_n have_v hold_v the_o same_o moderation_n there_o have_v be_v no_o need_n of_o such_o law_n but_o it_o be_v a_o remediless_a misery_n of_o society_n that_o when_o distinction_n can_v be_v make_v between_o the_o guilty_a and_o the_o innocent_a public_a justice_n which_o seek_v to_o prevent_v the_o common_a danger_n look_v upon_o the_o whole_a society_n with_o one_o eye_n and_o if_o any_o innocent_a person_n suffer_v they_o must_v not_o blame_v the_o law_n but_o their_o own_o fellow_n who_o give_v just_a occasion_n for_o the_o make_n of_o such_o severe_a law_n so_o we_o see_v how_o many_o thing_n here_o be_v of_o their_o own_o election_n first_o they_o be_v warn_v by_o a_o edict_n not_o to_o study_v in_o those_o seminary_n which_o be_v found_v and_o maintain_v by_o such_o as_o be_v at_o that_o time_n in_o public_a hostility_n with_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n nevertheless_o they_o will_v not_o do_v it_o they_o be_v commannd_v to_o return_v home_o by_o a_o prefix_a time_n they_o will_v not_o do_v it_o this_o alone_o have_v be_v sufficient_a to_o punish_v they_o as_o traitor_n by_o the_o ancient_a law_n of_o the_o land_n yet_o further_o they_o be_v command_v upon_o pain_n of_o death_n not_o to_o return_v into_o england_n nor_o to_o exercise_v their_o priestly_a function_n there_o yet_o they_o do_v it_o and_o one_o of_o they_o write_v a_o letter_n to_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o council_n aug._n that_o he_o be_v come_v over_o and_o will_v not_o desist_v until_o he_o have_v either_o turn_v they_o to_o be_v roman_a catholic_n or_o die_v upon_o their_o lance_n to_o conclude_v if_o we_o view_v the_o particular_a law_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o they_o look_v more_o upon_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n then_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o act_n and_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n be_v frame_v in_o the_o day_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o by_o roman_a catholic_n themselves_o the_o first_o penal_a law_n of_o this_o nature_n that_o i_o find_v make_v by_o queen_n elizabeth_n be_v in_o the_o six_o year_n of_o her_o reign_n against_o those_o who_o shall_v maintain_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n thrice_o by_o word_n or_o writing_n or_o refuse_v the_o oath_n of_o ●upremay_n twice_o the_o second_o in_o the_o fourteen_o year_n of_o her_o reign_n against_o those_o who_o shall_v pronounce_v the_o queen_n to_o be_v a_o heretic_n schismatic_a or_o infidel_n and_o likewise_o those_o who_o bring_v over_o bull_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o reconcile_v any_o of_o the_o queen_n subject_n or_o indulgence_n or_o agnus_n dei_fw-la or_o the_o like_a yet_o be_v this_o never_o put_v in_o execution_n for_o six_o year_n until_o the_o execution_n of_o it_o be_v extort_a all_o this_o either_o concern_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n or_o such_o act_n as_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o a_o roman_n catholic_n for_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o his_o conscience_n a_o man_n may_v believe_v free_o what_o his_o conscience_n dictate_v to_o he_o or_o practice_v his_o own_o religion_n so_o he_o prate_v not_o too_o much_o nor_o meddle_v with_o other_o afterward_o in_o the_o twenty_o three_o year_n of_o her_o reign_n issue_v out_o the_o proclamation_n against_o the_o english_a seminary_n wherein_o her_o subject_n be_v breed_v pensioner_n to_o the_o enemy_n of_o her_o crown_n the_o last_o law_n of_o this_o kind_n be_v make_v in_o the_o twenty_o four_o year_n of_o her_o ●eign_n against_o those_o who_o shall_v dissuade_v english_a subject_n from_o their_o obedience_n to_o their_o prince_n or_o from_o the_o religion_n establish_v or_o shall_v reconcile_v they_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o all_o these_o law_n though_o extort_a from_o the_o queen_n by_o so_o many_o rebellion_n and_o treason_n and_o deprivation_n and_o extreme_a necessity_n there_o be_v nothing_o that_o do_v reflect_v upon_o a_o old_a quiet_a queen_n maryes_fw-mi priest_n or_o any_o that_o be_v ordain_v within_o the_o land_n by_o the_o romish_a bishop_n then_o survive_v so_o they_o be_v not_o over_o busy_a and_o meddle_v with_o other_o these_o may_v have_v suffice_v or_o officiate_a to_o roman_n catholic_n if_o the_o pope_n have_v please_v but_o he_o prefer_v his_o own_o end_n before_o their_o safety_n non_fw-la his_fw-la juvenius_fw-la orta_fw-la parentibus_fw-la infecit_fw-la aequor_fw-la sanguine_fw-la these_o be_v not_o principled_a for_o his_o purpose_n nor_o of_o that_o temper_n that_o his_o affair_n require_v and_o therefore_o he_o erect_v new_a seminary_n and_o place_v new_a reader_n according_a to_o his_o own_o mind_n and_o in_o conclusion_n force_v the_o queen_n to_o use_v necessary_a remedy_n so_o save_v herself_o and_o the_o kingdom_n these_o thing_n be_v premise_v it_o will_v not_o be_v difficult_a to_o answer_v to_o all_o which_o r._n c._n say_v first_o he_o say_v that_o in_o all_o the_o pretend_a case_n of_o treason_n there_o be_v no_o election_n but_o of_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o that_o they_o suffer_v mere_o for_o matter_n of_o religion_n without_o any_o show_n of_o true_a treason_n i_o confess_v that_o treason_n be_v complicate_v with_o religion_n in_o it_o but_o i_o deny_v that_o they_o suffer_v mere_o for_o religion_n any_o more_o than_o he_o that_o poison_v a_o emperor_n or_o a_o prior_n in_o the_o sacrament_n can_v have_v be_v say_v to_o suffer_v for_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n and_o not_o rather_o for_o mix_v poison_n with_o the_o sacrament_n or_o then_o he_o who_o out_o of_o blind_a obedience_n to_o his_o superior_a kill_v a_o man_n can_v be_v say_v to_o suffer_v death_n for_o his_o conscience_n or_o he_o who_o be_v infect_v with_o the_o plague_n and_o seek_v to_o infect_v other_o if_o he_o be_v shoot_v dead_a in_o the_o attempt_n can_v be_v say_v to_o suffer_v for_o his_o sickness_n in_o so_o many_o design_n to_o take_v away_o the_o queen_n life_n in_o so_o many_o rebellion_n in_o so_o many_o seditious_a tenet_n in_o so_o many_o traitorous_a book_n and_o last_o in_o adhere_v unto_o and_o turn_v pensioner_n to_o a_o public_a profess_a enemy_n of_o their_o prince_n and_o native_a country_n can_v he_o see_v no_o treason_n nothing_o but_o matter_n of_o religion_n if_o he_o can_v or_o will_v not_o yet_o they_o who_o be_v more_o near_o concern_v in_o it_o have_v reason_n to_o look_v better_o about_o they_o he_o ask_v how_o i_o can_v term_v that_o political_a supremacy_n which_o be_v supremacy_n in_o all_o cause_n to_o wit_n ecclesiastical_a or_o religious_a i_o answer_v very_o well_o as_o the_o king_n be_v the_o keeper_n of_o both_o table_n to_o see_v that_o every_o one_o of_o his_o subject_n do_v his_o duty_n in_o his_o place_n whether_o clergyman_n or_o layman_n and_o to_o infl●ct_v political_a punishment_n upon_o they_o who_o be_v delinquent_a and_o where_o he_o say_v that_o queen_n elizabeth_n challenge_v more_o he_o do_v her_o wrong_n she_o challenge_v no_o more_o and_o moreover_o in_o her_o first_o parliament_n take_v order_n to_o have_v the_o head_n of_o the_o english_a church_n leave_v out_o of_o her_o title_n he_o demand_v further_a whether_o nero_n by_o the_o same_o right_n may_v not_o have_v condemn_v st._n peter_n and_o st._n paul_n of_o treason_n for_o come_v to_o rome_n with_o forbid_a order_n and_o seek_v to_o seduce_v his_o subject_n from_o the_o
be_v speak_v in_o r._n c._n his_o sense_n yet_o ealred_n be_v but_o one_o doctor_n who_o authority_n be_v not_o fit_a to_o counterbalance_v the_o public_a law_n and_o custom_n and_o record_n ●f_o a_o whole_a kingdom_n neither_o do_v it_o appear_v ●hat_n they_o who_o sit_v at_o the_o stern_a in_o those_o day_n do_v either_o suffer_v it_o or_o so_o much_o as_o know_v of_o it_o book_n be_v not_o publish_v then_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v write_v but_o lay_v most_o common_o dormient_fw-la many_o year_n or_o perhaps_o many_o age_n before_o they_o see_v the_o sun_n but_o ealred_n his_o sense_n be_v not_o the_o same_o it_o can_v not_o be_v the_o same_o with_o r._n c._n he_o no_o man_n in_o those_o day_n do_v take_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o roman_n catholic_n or_o universal_a church_n but_o for_o the_o diocese_n of_o rome_n which_o their_o best_a protector_n do_v make_v to_o be_v no_o otherwise_o infallible_a then_o upon_o supposition_n of_o the_o inseparability_n of_o the_o papacy_n from_o it_o which_o bellarmine_n himself_o confess_v to_o be_v but_o a_o probable_a opinion_n neque_fw-la scriptura_fw-la neque_fw-la traditio_fw-la habet_fw-la sedem_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la ita_fw-la fixaem_fw-la esse_fw-la romae_fw-la 4._o ut_fw-la inde_fw-la auferré_v non_fw-la possit_fw-la there_o be_v neither_o scripture_n nor_o tradition_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o apostolic_a see_v be_v so_o fix_v to_o rome_n that_o it_o can_v be_v remove_v from_o it_o therefore_o these_o word_n of_o ealred_n can_v be_v apply_v to_o this_o present_a question_n because_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o question_n be_v change_v and_o if_o they_o be_v understand_v simple_o and_o absolute_o of_o a_o universal_a communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n both_o present_a and_o future_a they_o be_v unfound_a in_o the_o judgement_n of_o bellarraine_n himself_o it_o remain_v therefore_o that_o they_o be_v either_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o communicate_v in_o essential_o and_o so_o we_o communicate_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o this_o day_n or_o that_o by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n ealred_n do_v understand_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n of_o that_o age_n whereas_o all_o those_o exception_n which_o we_o have_v against_o they_o for_o our_o not_o communicate_v with_o they_o actual_o in_o all_o thing_n be_v either_o spring_v up_o since_o ealreds_n time_n or_o at_o least_o since_o that_o time_n make_v or_o declare_v necessary_a condition_n of_o their_o communion_n last_o i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o take_v notice_n that_o these_o word_n of_o ealred_n do_v contain_v nothing_o against_o the_o political_a supremacy_n of_o king_n nor_o against_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o english_a church_n nor_o for_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n over_o england_n and_o so_o may_v have_v be_v pass_v by_o as_o impertinent_a they_o indict_v their_o letter_n to_o the_o pope_n in_o these_o word_n pope_n summo_fw-la &_o universali_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la pastori_fw-la nicholas_n edwardus_fw-la dei_fw-la gratia_fw-la angliae_fw-la rex_fw-la debitam_fw-la subjectionem_fw-la &_o omnimodum_fw-la servitium_fw-la it_o seem_v that_o the_o copy_n differ_v some_o have_v not_o pastori_fw-la but_o patri_fw-la nor_o universali_fw-la but_o universalis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la and_o no_o more_o but_o obedientiam_fw-la for_o omnimodum_fw-la servitium_fw-la but_o let_v he_o read_v it_o as_o he_o list_v it_o signify_v nothing_o there_o can_v be_v imagine_v a_o weak_a or_o a_o poor_a argument_n then_o that_o which_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o superscription_n or_o subscription_n of_o a_o letter_n he_o that_o enroll_v every_o man_n in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o his_o friend_n and_o servant_n who_o subscribe_v themselves_o his_o love_a or_o oblige_a friend_n or_o his_o faithful_a and_o obedient_a servant_n will_v find_v his_o friend_n and_o servant_n soon_o at_o a_o feast_n then_o at_o a_o fray_n title_n be_v give_v in_o letter_n more_o out_o of_o custom_n and_o formality_n then_o out_o of_o judgement_n and_o truth_n the_o pope_n will_v not_o stick_v to_o indite_v his_o letter_n to_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o yet_o suffer_v he_o to_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v in_o rome_n every_o one_o who_o indict_v their_o letter_n to_o the_o high_a and_o mighty_a lord_n the_o state_n general_n do_v not_o present_o believe_v that_o be_v their_o just_a title_n before_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n resignation_n title_n be_v give_v sometime_o out_o of_o courtesy_n sometime_o out_o of_o necessity_n because_o man_n will_v not_o lose_v their_o business_n for_o want_v of_o a_o compliment_n he_o that_o will_v write_v to_o the_o great_a duke_n of_o muscovia_n must_v style_v he_o emperor_n of_o russia_n how_o many_o have_v lose_v their_o letter_n and_o their_o labour_n for_o want_n of_o a_o mon_fw-fr frere_n or_o mon_fw-fr confine_v my_o brother_n or_o my_o cousin_n it_o be_v best_o for_o he_o to_o quit_v his_o argument_n from_o superscription_n otherwise_o he_o will_v be_v show_v pope_n call_v prince_n their_o lord_n and_o themselves_o their_o subject_n and_o servant_n yea_o prince_n most_o glorious_a and_o most_o excellent_a lord_n and_o themselves_z servants_z of_o servant_n that_o be_v servants_z in_o the_o snperlative_a degree_n they_o will_v find_v cyprian_a to_o his_o brother_n cornelius_n health_n and_o justinian_n to_o john_n the_o most_o holy_a archbishop_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n &_o patriarch_n do_v st._n cyprian_n believe_v cornelius_n to_o be_v his_o master_n and_o style_v he_o brother_n or_o owe_v obedience_n and_o service_n and_o send_v but_o health_n have_v be_v be_v comely_a to_o style_v a_o ecclesiastical_a monarch_n plain_a archbishop_n and_o patriarch_n and_o for_o the_o christian_a world_n to_o set_v down_o only_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n but_o what_o do_v he_o take_v hold_v on_o in_o this_o superscription_n to_o their_o advantage_n be_v it_o the_o word_n summo_fw-la that_o can_v be_v it_o be_v confess_v general_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v priority_n of_o order_n among_o the_o patriarch_n or_o be_v it_o the_o word_n universali_fw-la neither_o can_v that_o be_v all_o the_o patriarch_n be_v style_v ecumenical_a or_o universal_a not_o in_o respect_n of_o a_o universal_a power_n but_o their_o universal_a care_n 28._o as_o saint_n paul_n say_v the_o care_n of_o all_o the_o church_n do_v lie_v upon_o he_o and_o their_o presidence_n in_o general_a counsel_n it_o can_v be_v the_o word_n pastori_fw-la all_o bishop_n be_v ancient_o call_v pastor_n where_o then_o lie_v the_o strength_n of_o this_o argument_n in_o the_o word_n due_a subjection_n no._n there_o be_v subjection_n to_o good_a advice_n as_o well_o as_o to_o just_a command_n the_o principal_a patriarch_n bear_v the_o great_a sway_n in_o a_o general_a council_n in_o that_o respect_n there_o be_v subjection_n due_a unto_o they_o the_o last_o word_n all_o fort_n of_o service_n be_v not_o in_o some_o copy_n and_o if_o they_o be_v verborum_fw-la ut_fw-la nummorum_fw-la as_o they_o be_v common_o use_v as_o well_o from_o superior_n to_o their_o inferior_n as_o from_o inferior_n to_o their_o superior_n they_o signify_v nothing_o i_o wonder_v he_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o cite_v this_o superscription_n consider_v the_o clause_n in_o pope_n nicholas_n his_o letter_n to_o king_n edward_n ibidem_fw-la vobis_fw-la veroì_n &_o posteris_fw-la vestris_fw-la regibus_fw-la committimus_fw-la advocationem_fw-la &_o tuitionem_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la loci_fw-la &_o omnium_fw-la totius_fw-la angliae_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la ut_fw-la vice_fw-la nostrâ_fw-la cum_fw-la consilio_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la &_o abbatum_fw-la constituas_fw-la ubique_fw-la quae_fw-la justa_fw-la sunt_fw-la king_n edward_n by_o the_o fundamental_a law_n of_o the_o land_n be_v the_o vicar_n of_o god_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o god_n within_o his_o dominion_n but_o if_o he_o have_v not_o here_o be_v a_o better_a title_n from_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n itself_o then_o that_o whereby_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n hold_v all_o the_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n of_o sicily_n to_o he_o and_o his_o heir_n at_o this_o day_n creature_n they_o profess_v that_o it_o be_v heresy_n to_o deny_v that_o the_o pope_n omni_fw-la praesidet_fw-la creaturae_fw-la be_v above_o every_o creature_n that_o be_v no_o more_o than_o to_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o successor_n to_o saint_n peter_n be_v principium_fw-la unitatis_fw-la the_o begin_n of_o unity_n or_o have_v a_o principality_n of_o order_n not_o of_o power_n above_o all_o christian_n it_o will_v be_v hard_a for_o he_o to_o gain_v any_o thing_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o that_o wife_n and_o victorious_a prince_n edward_n the_o three_o who_o dispose_v of_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n receive_v homage_n and_o fealty_n from_o his_o prelate_n who_o write_v that_o so_o much_o admire_v letter_n to_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o english_a church_n cui_fw-la pro_fw-la tunc_fw-la papa_n aut_fw-la cardinal_n rationabiliter_fw-la respondere_fw-la nesciebant_fw-la 1343._o to_o which_o the_o pope_n and_o
cardinal_n do_v not_o know_v at_o that_o time_n how_o to_o give_v a_o reasonable_a answer_n wherein_o he_o plead_v that_o his_o ancestor_n have_v grant_v free_a election_n ad_fw-la rogatum_fw-la &_o instantiam_fw-la dictae_fw-la sedis_fw-la upon_o the_o earnest_a entreaty_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n which_o now_o they_o endeavour_v to_o usurp_v and_o seize_v upon_o who_o make_v himself_o in_o parliament_n the_o judge_n of_o all_o the_o grievance_n which_o the_o kingdom_n sustain_v from_o the_o pope_n who_o make_v express_v law_n against_o the_o oppression_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n declare_v public_o 3._o that_o it_o be_v his_o duty_n and_o that_o he_o be_v bind_v by_o his_o oath_n to_o make_v remedy_n against_o they_o this_o be_v more_o than_o twenty_o such_o compliment_n as_o this_o which_o be_v most_o true_a in_o a_o right_a sense_n that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o compliment_n appear_v evident_o by_o this_o the_o question_n be_v about_o edward_n the_o three_o right_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o france_n and_o his_o confederation_n with_o lewis_n of_o bavaria_n these_o be_v no_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n the_o king_n send_v his_o ambassador_n to_o the_o pope_n to_o treat_v with_o he_o about_o his_o right_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o france_n but_o notwithstanding_o his_o supereminent_a judgement_n he_o give_v they_o in_o charge_n to_o treat_v with_o the_o pope_n not_o as_o a_o judge_n 1343._o but_o as_o a_o private_a person_n and_o a_o common_a friend_n not_o in_o form_n nor_o in_o figure_n of_o judgement_n he_o attribute_v no_o more_o to_o the_o pope_n then_o to_o another_o man_n according_a to_o the_o reason_n which_o he_o shall_v produce_v his_o own_o word_n be_v these_o parati_fw-la semper_fw-la nedum_fw-la a_o vestro_fw-la sancto_fw-la cunctis_fw-la presidente_fw-la judicio_fw-la imo_fw-la a_o quolibet_fw-la alio_fw-la de_fw-la veritate_fw-la contrarii_fw-la si_fw-la quis_fw-la eam_fw-la noverit_fw-la humiliter_fw-la informari_fw-la &_o qui_fw-la sponte_fw-la rationi_fw-la subjicimur_fw-la aliam_fw-la datam_fw-la nobis_fw-la intelligi_fw-la veritatem_fw-la cum_fw-la plena_fw-la &_o humili_fw-la gratitudine_fw-la complectemur_fw-la be_v ready_a always_o humble_o to_o be_v inform_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o contrary_a if_o any_o man_n know_v it_o not_o only_o from_o your_o holy_a judgement_n be_v place_v in_o dignity_n before_o all_o or_o as_o it_o be_v in_o another_o place_n before_o every_o creature_n but_o from_o any_o other_o and_o we_o who_o be_v subject_a to_o reason_n of_o our_o own_o accord_n will_v embrace_v the_o truth_n with_o humility_n and_o thankfulness_n when_o it_o be_v make_v know_v unto_o we_o this_o be_v edward_n the_o three_o resolution_n to_o submit_v to_o reason_n and_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n from_o whosoever_o it_o proceed_v yet_o though_o the_o case_n be_v mere_o civil_a and_o not_o at_o all_o of_o ecclesiastical_a cognizance_n and_o though_o edward_n the_o three_o do_v not_o will_v not_o trust_v the_o pope_n with_o it_o as_o a_o judge_n but_o as_o a_o indifferent_a friend_n yet_o he_o give_v he_o good_a word_n that_o his_o judgement_n be_v place_v in_o dignity_n above_o all_o creature_n which_o to_o deny_v be_v to_o allow_v of_o heresy_n why_o do_v we_o hear_v word_n when_o we_o see_v deed_n the_o former_a pope_n have_v excommunicate_v lewis_n of_o bavaria_n and_o all_o who_o shall_v acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v emperor_n nevertheless_o edward_n the_o three_o contract_v a_o firm_a league_n with_o he_o ibidem_fw-la and_o moreover_o become_v his_o lieutenant_n in_o the_o empire_n pope_n benedict_n take_v notice_n of_o it_o writes_z to_z king_n edward_z about_o it_o intimate_v the_o decree_n of_o his_o predecessor_n against_o lewis_n of_o bavaria_n and_o his_o adherent_n signify_v that_o the_o emperor_n be_v deprive_v and_o can_v not_o make_v a_o lieutenant_n the_o king_n give_v fair_a word_n in_o general_a but_o notwithstanding_o all_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v do_v to_o the_o contrary_n proceed_v renew_v his_o league_n with_o the_o emperor_n and_o his_o commission_n for_o the_o lieutenancy_n and_o trust_v more_o to_o his_o own_o judgement_n then_o co_z the_o supereminent_a judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n so_o he_o draw_v to_o a_o conclusion_n of_o this_o chapter_n and_o though_o he_o have_v prove_v nothing_o in_o the_o world_n yet_o he_o ask_v what_o great_a power_n do_v ever_o pope_n challenge_v then_o here_o be_v profess_v even_o all_o the_o power_n that_o be_v in_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o they_o he_o challenge_v the_o political_a headship_n of_o the_o english_a church_n under_o pretence_n of_o a_o ecclesiastical_a monarchy_n he_o challenge_v a_o legislative_a power_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n he_o challenge_v a_o dispensative_a power_n above_o the_o law_n against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n whensoever_o wheresoever_o over_o whosoever_o he_o challenge_v liberty_n to_o send_v legate_n and_o hold_v legantine_n court_v in_o england_n without_o licence_n he_o challenge_v the_o right_n of_o receive_v the_o last_o appeal_n of_o the_o king_n subject_n he_o challenge_v the_o patronage_n of_o the_o english_a church_n and_o investiture_n of_o bishop_n with_o power_n to_o impose_v a_o new_a oath_n upon_o they_o contrary_a to_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n he_o challenge_v the_o first_o fruit_n and_o ten_o of_o ecclesiastical_a live_n and_o a_o power_n to_o impose_v upon_o they_o what_o pension_n or_o other_o burden_n he_o please_v he_o challenge_v the_o good_n of_o clergyman_n die_v intestate_a etc._n etc._n all_o which_o be_v express_o contrary_a to_o the_o fundamental_a law_n and_o custom_n of_o england_n he_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o resist_v the_o pope_n invade_v either_o the_o body_n or_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n or_o trouble_v the_o commonwealth_n or_o indeavor_v to_o destroy_v the_o church_n i_o ask_v no_o more_o yea_o forsooth_o say_v he_o if_o i_o may_v be_v judge_n what_o do_v invade_v the_o soul_n no_o i_o confess_v i_o be_o no_o fit_a judge_n no_o more_o be_v he_o the_o main_a question_n be_v who_o shall_v be_v judge_n what_o be_v the_o liberty_n and_o immunity_n of_o a_o national_a church_n and_o what_o be_v the_o grievance_n which_o they_o sustain_v from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n be_v it_o equal_a that_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n themselves_o shall_v be_v the_o judge_n who_o be_v the_o person_n that_o do_v the_o wrong_n nothing_o can_v be_v more_o absurd_a in_o vain_a be_v any_o man_n sentence_n expect_v against_o himself_o the_o most_o proper_a and_o the_o high_a judicature_n upon_o earth_n in_o this_o case_n be_v a_o general_a council_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o cyprian_a bishop_n and_o their_o pretend_a patriarch_n and_o until_o that_o remedy_n can_v be_v have_v it_o be_v lawful_a and_o behoove_v every_o kingdom_n or_o national_a church_n who_o know_v best_a their_o own_o right_n and_o have_v the_o most_o feel_a where_o their_o shoe_n wring_v they_o to_o be_v their_o own_o judge_n i_o mean_v only_o by_o a_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n to_o preserve_v their_o own_o right_n inviolated_a and_o their_o person_n free_a from_o wrong_n sub_fw-la moderamine_fw-la inculpatae_fw-la tutelae_fw-la and_o especial_o sovereign_a prince_n be_v bind_v both_o by_o their_o office_n and_o by_o their_o oath_n to_o provide_v for_o the_o security_n and_o indemnity_n of_o their_o subject_n as_o all_o roman_a catholic_n prince_n do_v when_o they_o have_v occasion_n and_o here_o he_o fall_v the_o three_o time_n upon_o his_o former_a theme_n that_o in_o thing_n institute_v by_o god_n the_o abuse_n do_v not_o take_v away_o the_o use_n which_o we_o do_v willing_o acknowledge_v and_o say_v with_o saint_n austin_n neque_fw-la enim_fw-la si_fw-la peccavit_fw-la cecilianus_n ideo_fw-la haereditatem_fw-la svam_fw-la perdidit_fw-la christus_fw-la 50._o &_o sceleratae_fw-la impudentiae_fw-la est_fw-la propter_fw-la crimina_fw-la hominis_fw-la quae_fw-la orbi_fw-la terrarum_fw-la non_fw-la possis_fw-la ostendere_fw-la communionem_fw-la orbis_fw-la terrarum_fw-la velle_fw-la damnare_fw-la neither_o if_o cecilian_n offend_v do_v christ_n therefore_o lose_v his_o inheritance_n and_o it_o be_v wicked_a impudence_n for_o the_o crime_n of_o a_o man_n which_o thou_o can_v not_o show_v to_o the_o world_n to_o be_v willing_a to_o condemn_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o world_n but_o neither_o be_v that_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o we_o have_v reject_v either_o of_o divine_a or_o apostolical_a institution_n nor_o have_v we_o reject_v it_o for_o the_o personal_a fault_n of_o some_o pope_n but_o because_o it_o be_v faulty_a in_o itself_o nor_o have_v we_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o the_o conjoin_v communion_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n in_o any_o thing_n i_o wish_v the_o romanist_n be_v no_o more_o guilty_a thereof_o then_o we_o of_o king_n henry_n exemption_n of_o himself_o from_o all_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n we_o have_v speak_v former_o in_o this_o very_a chapter_n 2._o caap._n 5._o the_o scope_n of_o my_o five_o chapter_n be_v to_o
or_o limitation_n necessary_a in_o every_o reformation_n first_o that_o it_o be_v make_v advise_o upon_o well_o ground_v experience_n second_o 116._o that_o it_o be_v do_v in_o a_o national_n synod_n three_o that_o it_o be_v only_o in_o matter_n of_o humane_a right_n four_o that_o nothing_o be_v change_v but_o that_o which_o be_v become_v hurtful_a or_o impeditive_a of_o a_o great_a good_a he_o leave_v out_o three_o of_o these_o restriction_n altogether_o and_o only_a mention_n one_o that_o it_o be_v in_o matter_n of_o humane_a institution_n as_o if_o the_o rest_n be_v of_o no_o consideration_n he_o can_v choose_v but_o know_v that_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o own_o school_n if_o a_o man_n do_v vow_v any_o thing_n to_o god_n which_o afterward_o be_v find_v to_o be_v hurtful_a and_o impeditive_a of_o a_o great_a good_a make_v his_o vow_n null_n and_o void_a 10._o and_o disoblige_v he_o from_o performance_n of_o it_o if_o it_o be_v true_a in_o a_o vow_n to_o god_n it_o be_v more_o true_a in_o a_o promise_n make_v to_o man_n and_o he_o need_v no_o dispensation_n to_o retract_v it_o kingdom_n but_o let_v we_o follow_v his_o step_n first_o whereas_o i_o allege_v their_o own_o author_n to_o prove_v that_o to_o who_o a_o kingdom_n be_v grant_v all_o necessary_a power_n be_v grant_v without_o which_o a_o kingdom_n can_v be_v govern_v he_o distinguish_v between_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o kingdom_n a_o king_n have_v power_n to_o do_v whatsoever_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o government_n of_o his_o kingdom_n but_o not_o whatsoever_o be_v for_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o kingdom_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o he_o confound_v power_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o power_n or_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o one_o with_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o other_o power_n be_v the_o necessary_a qualification_n of_o a_o king_n but_o the_o act_n or_o exercise_v of_o that_o power_n may_v be_v free_a and_o sufficient_o ground_v not_o only_o upon_o the_o necessity_n but_o upon_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o kingdom_n a_o legislative_a power_n be_v necessary_a to_o a_o king_n but_o this_o do_v not_o imply_v that_o he_o can_v make_v a_o law_n except_o only_o in_o case_n of_o absolute_a necessity_n power_n to_o administer_v a_o oath_n or_o to_o commit_v a_o malefactor_n be_v a_o necessary_a qualification_n of_o a_o judge_n yet_o he_o may_v administer_v a_o oath_n upon_o discretion_n or_o commit_v a_o man_n npon_n suspicion_n if_o a_o king_n or_o a_o judge_n invest_v with_o such_o a_o power_n shall_v misapply_v it_o or_o err_v in_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o he_o owe_v a_o account_n to_o god_n and_o the_o prince_n from_o who_o he_o receive_v the_o power_n but_o the_o subject_n be_v bind_v at_o least_o to_o passive_a obedience_n now_o let_v he_o see_v his_o own_o mistake_n the_o question_n between_o we_o be_v whether_o a_o power_n to_o reform_v abuse_n and_o inconvenience_n be_v necessary_a to_o a_o king_n to_o which_o all_o his_o subject_n owe_v at_o least_o passive_a obedience_n he_o answer_v concern_v the_o exercise_n of_o this_o power_n in_o what_o case_n a_o king_n may_v lawful_o use_v it_o but_o if_o the_o king_n mistake_v the_o case_n yet_o the_o subject_n owe_v passive_a obedience_n second_o reformation_n i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v a_o double_a necessity_n first_o a_o simple_a or_o absolute_a necessity_n second_o a_o respective_a necessity_n secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la which_o we_o may_v call_v a_o necessity_n of_o convenience_n which_o be_v a_o true_a necessity_n and_o a_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o a_o christian_a law_n that_o be_v rather_o to_o make_v such_o a_o law_n then_o to_o sustain_v such_o indignity_n or_o to_o run_v such_o extreme_a hazard_n or_o lose_v such_o great_a advantaage_n as_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o we_o 15.28_o to_o lay_v upon_o you_o no_o great_a burden_n than_o these_o necessary_a thing_n and_o of_o four_o thing_n these_o be_v three_o to_o abstain_v from_o meat_n offer_v to_o idol_n and_o from_o blood_n and_o from_o thing_n strangle_v none_o of_o which_o thing_n be_v necessary_a in_o themselves_o either_o necessitate_v medii_fw-la or_o necessitate_v precept_n but_o they_o be_v necessary_a to_o avoid_v scandal_n and_o to_o gain_v advantage_n upon_o the_o jew_n and_o to_o retain_v they_o in_o a_o good_a opinion_n of_o christian_a religion_n saint_n james_n use_v the_o same_o argument_n to_o saint_n paul_n 20_o thou_o see_v brother_n how_o many_o thousand_o of_o jew_n there_o be_v which_o believe_v and_o they_o be_v all_o zealous_a of_o the_o law_n etc._n etc._n if_o the_o advantage_n be_v but_o small_a it_o be_v not_o worth_a abrogate_a a_o law_n or_o change_v a_o receive_a custom_n but_o if_o it_o be_v great_a senec._n malo_fw-la semel_fw-la excusare_fw-la quare_fw-la secerim_n quam_fw-la semper_fw-la quare_fw-la non_fw-la secerim_n it_o be_v better_a to_o make_v one_o just_a apology_n why_o a_o man_n do_v abrogate_v such_o a_o prejudicall_a custom_n then_o to_o be_v make_v daily_a excuse_n why_o he_o do_v not_o abrogate_v it_o vivere_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la vita_fw-la sed_fw-la valere_fw-la to_o live_v be_v not_o to_o draw_v out_o a_o linger_a breath_n but_o to_o enjoy_v health_n so_o the_o health_n and_o convenience_n and_o good_a constitution_n of_o a_o kingdom_n be_v more_o to_o be_v regard_v than_o the_o bare_a miserable_a be_v of_o it_o three_o i_o answer_v that_o our_o reformation_n in_o england_n be_v not_o only_o beneficial_a and_o advantageous_a to_o the_o kingdom_n necessary_a but_o necessary_a to_o avoid_v intolerable_a extortion_n and_o gross_a unjust_a and_o general_a usurpation_n of_o all_o man_n right_n they_o find_v plain_o that_o this_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n do_v interfere_v with_o the_o sovereign_a power_n the_o oath_n which_o bishop_n be_v force_v to_o take_v to_o the_o pope_n be_v examine_v in_o parliament_n 205._o and_o find_v to_o be_v plain_o contradictory_n to_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o repugnant_a to_o that_o duty_n which_o they_o do_v owe_v to_o general_a counsel_n they_o find_v that_o they_o be_v daily_o expose_v to_o peril_n of_o idolatry_n and_o in_o danger_n daily_o to_o have_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n obtrude_v upon_o they_o they_o see_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v implicit_o quit_v their_o patriarchall_a right_n and_o challenge_v a_o sovereignty_n over_o the_o church_n by_o divine_a right_n last_o they_o see_v that_o this_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n be_v become_v not_o only_o useless_a but_o destructive_a to_o those_o end_n for_o which_o patriarchall_a authority_n be_v first_o institute_v as_o the_o hang_n be_v fit_v to_o the_o house_n commonwealth_n so_o be_v the_o external_a regiment_n of_o the_o church_n fit_v and_o adopt_v to_o the_o then_o state_n of_o the_o empire_n when_o these_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n be_v first_o erect_v for_o the_o ease_n and_o benefit_n of_o the_o subject_a to_o the_o end_n that_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v necessitate_v to_o seek_v further_o for_o ecclesiastical_a justice_n than_o he_o do_v for_o civil_a nor_o to_o travel_v without_o the_o bound_n of_o his_o own_o province_n for_o a_o final_a sentence_n therefore_o wheresoever_o there_o be_v a_o civil_a metropolis_n there_o be_v place_v a_o ecclesiastical_a metropolitan_a also_o and_o where_o there_o be_v a_o secular_a protarch_n there_o be_v constitute_v a_o ecclesiastical_a patriarch_n to_o avoid_v the_o confusion_n and_o clash_n of_o jurisdiction_n this_o be_v plain_a out_o of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n that_o whereas_o some_o ambitious_a person_n contrary_a to_o the_o law_n ecclesiastical_a have_v multiply_v metropolitical_a see_v make_v two_o in_o one_o province_n where_o there_o be_v but_o one_o mother_n city_n or_o one_o civil_a metropolis_n the_o council_n define_v that_o no_o man_n shall_v attempt_v any_o such_o thing_n for_o the_o future_a 12._o but_o those_o city_n which_o have_v be_v adorn_v with_o the_o name_n of_o metropolis_n by_o the_o edict_n of_o king_n shall_v only_o enjoy_v that_o privilege_n and_o more_o plain_o by_o that_o of_o anacletus_fw-la cite_v by_o gratian_n if_o we_o may_v credit_v he_o province_n be_v divide_v long_o before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n 99_o for_o the_o most_o part_n and_o afterward_o that_o division_n be_v renew_a by_o the_o apostle_n and_o saint_n clement_n our_o predecessor_n so_o that_o in_o the_o chief_a city_n of_o all_o province_n where_o long_o since_o be_v primate_fw-la of_o the_o secular_a law_n and_o the_o high_a judiciary_n power_n etc._n etc._n there_o the_o divine_a and_o ecclesiastical_a law_n command_v patriarch_n or_o primate_fw-la to_o be_v place_v and_o to_o be_v which_o two_o though_o they_o be_v different_a in_o name_n yet_o retain_v the_o same_o sense_n this_o be_v well_o so_o long_o as_o the_o empire_n continue_v in_o the_o same_o state_n and_o the_o province_n
will_v content_v himself_o therewith_o but_o the_o chief_a ground_n of_o our_o separation_n be_v those_o which_o be_v inherent_a in_o the_o papacy_n itself_o qua_fw-la talis_fw-la as_o it_o be_v now_o defend_v as_o they_o seek_v to_o obtrude_v it_o upon_o we_o the_o lawless_a exorbitant_a oppression_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n the_o sovereignty_n of_o the_o pope_n above_o general_a counsel_n his_o legislative_a and_o judiciary_n power_n in_o all_o christian_a kingdom_n against_o the_o will_n of_o the_o right_a owner_n his_o pretend_a right_a to_o convocate_v synod_n and_o confirm_v synod_n and_o dissolve_v synod_n and_o hold_v legantine_n court_n and_o obtrude_v new_a point_n of_o faith_n as_o necessary_a article_n and_o receive_v the_o last_o appeal_n and_o dispose_v of_o all_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n and_o benefice_n at_o his_o pleasure_n and_o impose_v ten_o and_o first-fruit_n and_o subsidy_n and_o pension_n to_o invest_v bishop_n and_o sell_v pardon_n and_o indulgence_n and_o pall_v these_o and_o the_o like_a be_v not_o the_o fault_n of_o innocent_a the_o ten_o or_o vrban_n the_o eight_o or_o sextus_n or_o pius_n or_o alexander_n or_o clement_n or_o any_o particular_a pope_n but_o they_o be_v the_o fault_n of_o the_o papacy_n itself_o weave_v into_o the_o body_n of_o it_o and_o without_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o which_o they_o will_v suffer_v we_o to_o hold_v no_o communion_n with_o the_o papacy_n i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o they_o be_v inseparable_a for_o the_o time_n have_v be_v when_o the_o papacy_n be_v without_o those_o blemish_n but_o that_o it_o be_v folly_n at_o this_o time_n to_o hope_v from_o they_o for_o the_o anceient_a liberty_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o countryman_n expect_v that_o the_o river_n shall_v be_v r●n_v out_o and_o become_v dry_a rusticus_n expectat_fw-la ut_fw-la defluat_fw-la amnis_fw-la at_o ille_fw-la labitur_fw-la &_o labetur_fw-la in_fw-la omne_fw-la volubilis_fw-la aevum_fw-la we_o expect_v remedy_n and_o hope_v for_o reformation_n from_o the_o time_n of_o henry_n the_o first_o in_o who_o reign_n their_o encroachment_n do_v begin_v to_o grow_v signal_n and_o notorious_a until_o the_o day_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o throughout_o the_o reign_n of_o seventeen_o succeed_a king_n and_o find_v not_o the_o least_o ease_n from_o they_o but_o what_o we_o carve_v out_o ourselves_o no_o law_n of_o god_n or_o man_n do_v require_v that_o we_o shall_v wait_v eternal_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o vineyard_n think_v three_o year_n enough_o to_o expect_v fruit_n of_o the_o fruitless_a figtree_n and_o when_o it_o improve_v not_o in_o the_o four_o year_n the_o sentence_n issue_v against_o it_o 13.7_o cut_v it_o down_o why_o cumber_v it_o the_o ground_n material_a he_o urge_v that_o if_o some_o pope_n have_v wrong_v england_n temporal_o far_o more_o pope_n have_v benifit_v it_o much_o more_o both_o temporral_o and_o spiritual_o sufficit_fw-la unus_fw-la huic_fw-la operi_fw-la this_o be_v more_o comely_a in_o our_o mouth_n then_o in_o they_o some_o man_n will_v go_v make_v a_o estimate_n of_o papal_a importation_n as_o parchment_n and_o lead_v and_o wax_v and_o cross_n agnus_n dei'_v and_o relic_n and_o their_o exportation_n gold_n silver_n jewel_n and_o whatsoever_o the_o land_n afford_v either_o for_o necessity_n or_o delight_n but_o i_o will_v spare_v his_o modesty_n and_o suppose_v more_o than_o ever_o he_o will_v be_v able_a to_o prove_v ancient_a virtue_n or_o benefit_n do_v not_o justify_v a_o old_a institution_n when_o it_o be_v grow_v useless_a and_o subject_a to_o desperate_a abuse_n the_o brazen_a serpent_n be_v institute_v by_o god_n himself_o it_o be_v a_o singular_a type_n of_o christ_n it_o save_v the_o temporal_a life_n of_o the_o israelite_n and_o point_v they_o out_o the_o right_a way_n to_o eternal_a life_n yet_o when_o it_o be_v become_v useless_a and_o abuse_v over_o much_o hezekiah_n be_v commend_v for_o break_v it_o in_o piece_n 18.4_o and_o call_v it_o nehushtan_a a_o useless_a piece_n of_o common_a brass_n that_o have_v quite_o lose_v its_o ancient_a virtue_n the_o order_n of_o the_o templar_n be_v institute_v about_o the_o year_n 1120._o scarce_o any_o order_n can_v show_v such_o a_o hopeful_a beginning_n at_o their_o first_o institution_n or_o such_o a_o huge_a progress_n towards_o grearness_n in_o so_o short_a a_o revolution_n of_o time_n he_o who_o shall_v read_v these_o extraordinary_a praise_n which_o be_v give_v they_o by_o st._n bernard_n who_o be_v think_v to_o have_v be_v the_o author_n of_o their_o rule_n will_v take_v they_o rather_o to_o have_v be_v a_o society_n of_o angel_n then_o of_o mortal_a man_n yet_o in_o the_o day_n of_o clement_n the_o five_o they_o be_v general_o suppress_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o instant_n not_o for_o common_a fault_n but_o horrid_a crime_n and_o prodigious_a villainy_n by_o the_o joint_a consent_n of_o the_o occidental_a church_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n i_o inquire_v not_o whether_o their_o accusation_n be_v just_a or_o not_o but_o from_o hence_o i_o do_v collect_v that_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o this_o occidental_a world_n a_o good_a institution_n may_v be_v deserve_o abrogate_a for_o subsequent_a abuse_n as_o we_o have_v not_o the_o same_o latitude_n of_o power_n which_o they_o who_o censure_v they_o h●d_v so_o we_o do_v not_o act_v without_o our_o own_o sphere_n or_o the_o bound_n of_o the_o english_a dominion_n in_o the_o vindication_n i_o urge_v three_o point_n 2._o wherein_o the_o roman_n do_v agree_v with_o we_o first_o that_o sovereign_a prince_n not_o only_o may_v but_o in_o justice_n be_v oblige_v to_o repress_v the_o tyranny_n of_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n and_o protect_v their_o subject_n from_o their_o violence_n and_o free_v they_o from_o their_o oppress_a yoke_n to_o this_o he_o answer_v nothing_o second_o that_o prince_n may_v be_v enable_v either_o by_o grant_n or_o by_o prescription_n i_o add_v by_o their_o sovereign_a authority_n over_o the_o whole_a body_n politic_a to_o exercise_v all_o external_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n by_o themselves_o or_o by_o fit_a delegate_n and_o to_o make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n for_o the_o external_a regiment_n of_o the_o church_n to_o which_o their_o subject_n owe_v obedience_n this_o alone_o be_v sufficient_a to_o free_v we_o from_o schism_n but_o to_o all_o this_o likewise_o he_o say_v not_o one_o word_n good_a or_o bad_a three_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a in_o several_a case_n to_o subtract_v obedience_n from_o the_o pope_n and_o among_o other_o proof_n i_o cite_v the_o council_n of_o tower_n to_o this_o only_o he_o answer_v 48._o that_o they_o acknowledge_v it_o lawful_a to_o withdraw_v obedience_n from_o this_o or_o that_o pope_n in_o this_o or_o that_o case_n but_o not_o from_o papal_a authority_n itself_o whereas_o i_o show_v he_o in_o the_o vindication_n that_o the_o same_o equity_n which_o do_v allow_v substraction_n of_o obedience_n from_o this_o or_o that_o pope_n for_o personal_a fault_n corrupt_v as_o schism_n or_o simony_n do_v likewise_o allow_v substraction_n of_o obedience_n from_o he_o and_o his_o successor_n for_o faulty_a principle_n as_o obtrude_a new_a creed_n press_v of_o unlawful_a oath_n palpable_a usurpation_n of_o undoubted_a rite_n even_o until_o they_o be_v reform_v papal_a authority_n without_o the_o pope_n be_v but_o a_o imaginary_a idea_n whosoever_o substract_v obedience_n from_o the_o true_a pope_n substract_v obedience_n from_o the_o papal_a authority_n perhaps_o indeed_o not_o simple_o or_o absolute_o but_o respective_o as_o he_o say_v in_o this_o or_o that_o case_n but_o what_o if_o the_o pope_n will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o pay_v their_o obedience_n in_o part_n so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v due_a but_o have_v it_o entire_a according_a to_o his_o own_o demand_n or_o none_o at_o all_o then_o it_o be_v not_o they_o who_o separate_v themselves_o from_o papal_a authority_n but_o it_o be_v papal_a authority_n which_o separate_v they_o from_o it_o either_o he_o understand_v papal_a authority_n such_o as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la and_o then_o we_o have_v substract_v no_o obedience_n from_o it_o for_o we_o ought_v it_o none_o and_o be_v not_o unwilling_a for_o peace_n sake_n to_o pay_v it_o more_o respect_n than_o we_o do_v owe._n or_o else_o by_o papal_a authority_n he_o understand_v a_o spiritual_a monarchy_n such_o as_o it_o be_v now_o with_o superiority_n above_o general_a counsel_n and_o infallibility_n of_o judgement_n and_o legislative_a authority_n and_o patronage_n of_o all_o ecclesiastical_a preferment_n etc._n etc._n and_o then_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v never_o acknowledge_v any_o such_o papal_a authority_n and_o then_o to_o withdraw_v our_o obedience_n from_o it_o be_v not_o to_o subtract_v obedience_n from_o a_o lawful_a but_o from_o a_o unlawful_a and_o tyrannical_a power_n pope_n when_o sovereign_a prince_n do_v withdraw_v obedience_n from_o this_o or_o that_o pope_n in_o this_o or_o that_o
supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o realm_n of_o england_n which_o signify_v no_o more_o but_o this_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o realm_n but_o he_o which_o be_v most_o true_a and_o to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o only_a and_o supreme_a governor_n which_o imply_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o governor_n but_o he_o which_o be_v most_o false_a there_o be_v both_o spiritual_a and_o civil_a governor_n in_o england_n beside_o he_o to_o say_v the_o pope_n be_v the_o only_a supreme_a bishop_n in_o his_o own_o patriarchate_o be_v most_o true_a but_o to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o only_a and_o supreme_a bishop_n in_o his_o patriarchate_n be_v most_o false_a this_o be_v to_o degrade_v all_o his_o suffragans_fw-la and_o allow_v no_o bishop_n in_o his_o province_n but_o himself_o second_o i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v no_o supremacy_n ascribe_v to_o the_o king_n in_o this_o oath_n but_o mere_o political_a which_o be_v essential_o annex_v to_o the_o imperial_a crown_n of_o every_o sovereign_a prince_n the_o oath_n say_v that_o the_o king_n highness_n be_v the_o only_a supreme_a governor_n of_o his_o highness_n realm_n and_o dominion_n what_o do_v saint_n peter_n himself_o say_v less_o to_o his_o own_o successor_n as_o well_o as_o other_o 2.13_o submit_v yourselves_o to_o every_o ordinance_n of_o man_n for_o the_o lord_n sake_n whether_o it_o be_v to_o the_o king_n as_o supreme_a how_o often_o do_v saint_n gregory_n acknowledge_v the_o emperor_n to_o be_v his_o supreme_a governor_n or_o sovereign_a lord_n and_o profess_v obedience_n and_o subjection_n unto_o he_o and_o execute_v his_o command_n in_o ecclesiastical_a thing_n that_o commonwealth_n be_v miserable_a and_o subject_a to_o the_o clash_n of_o jurisdiction_n where_o there_o be_v two_o supremes_n like_o a_o serpent_n with_o two_o head_n at_o either_o end_n one_o the_o oath_n add_v in_o all_o spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a thing_n or_o cause_n this_o be_v true_a with_o some_o limitation_n as_o first_o either_o by_o himself_o or_o by_o fit_a substitute_n who_o be_v ecclesiastical_a person_n for_o our_o king_n can_v excommunicate_v or_o absolve_v in_o their_o own_o person_n second_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o those_o cause_n which_o be_v handle_v in_o foro_fw-la contentioso_fw-la in_o the_o exterior_a court_n not_o in_o the_o inner_a court_n of_o conscience_n three_o either_o in_o the_o first_o or_o in_o the_o second_o instance_n by_o receive_v the_o appeal_n and_o redress_v the_o wrong_n of_o his_o injure_a subject_n some_o thing_n be_v so_o pure_o spiritual_a that_o king_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v in_o they_o in_o their_o own_o person_n as_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o bind_n and_o lose_v of_o sinner_n yet_o the_o person_n to_o who_o the_o discharge_n of_o these_o duty_n do_v belong_v and_o the_o person_n towards_o who_o these_o duty_n ought_v to_o be_v discharge_v be_v their_o subject_n they_o have_v a_o power_n paramount_n to_o see_v that_o each_o of_o they_o do_v their_o duty_n in_o their_o several_a station_n the_o cause_n indeed_o be_v ecclesiastical_a but_o the_o power_n of_o govern_v be_v political_a this_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o oath_n neither_o more_o nor_o less_o as_o appear_v plain_o by_o our_o thirty_o seven_o article_n 37._o where_o we_o attribute_v to_o our_o prince_n the_o chief_a government_n by_o which_o title_n we_o understand_v the_o mind_n of_o some_o slanderous_a folk_n to_o be_v offend_v we_o give_v not_o to_o our_o prince_n the_o minister_a either_o of_o god_n word_n or_o of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o that_o only_a prerogative_n which_o we_o see_v to_o have_v be_v give_v always_o to_o all_o godly_a prince_n in_o holy_a scripture_n by_o god_n himself_o this_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v rule_v all_o estate_n and_o degree_n commit_v to_o their_o charge_n by_o god_n whether_o they_o be_v ecclesiastical_a or_o temporal_a and_o restrein_o with_o the_o civil_a sword_n the_o stubborn_a or_o evil_a doer_n here_o be_v no_o power_n assert_v no_o punishment_n to_o be_v inflict_v by_o the_o king_n in_o his_o own_o person_n but_o only_o political_a i_o confess_v person_n depute_v and_o delegated_a by_o the_o king_n do_v often_o excommunicate_a and_o absolve_v and_o act_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n but_o this_o be_v by_o the_o virtue_n of_o their_o own_o habit_n of_o jurisdiction_n all_o which_o the_o king_n contribute_v by_o his_o commission_n be_v a_o liberty_n and_o power_n to_o act_v in_o this_o particular_a case_n &_o a_o application_n of_o the_o matter_n which_o a_o lay_v patron_n or_o a_o master_n of_o a_o family_n 10._o or_o a_o subordinate_a magistrate_n may_v do_v much_o more_o a_o sovereign_a prince_n this_o power_n many_o roman_a catholic_n doctor_n do_v justify_v the_o king_n of_o spain_n cite_v above_o twenty_o of_o they_o let_v the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n know_v that_o they_o owe_v a_o account_n to_o god_n of_o the_o church_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o he_o into_o their_o protection_n for_o whether_o peace_n and_o right_n ecclesiastical_a discipline_n be_v increase_v or_o decay_v by_o christian_a prince_n god_n will_v require_v a_o account_n from_o they_o who_o have_v trust_v his_o church_n unto_o their_o power_n all_o this_o power_n the_o king_n of_o spain_n exercise_v in_o sicily_n in_o all_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n over_o all_o ecclesiastical_a person_n as_o well_o in_o the_o first_o instance_n as_o the_o second_o this_o power_n a_o lay-chanceller_n exercise_v in_o the_o court_n christian_n this_o power_n a_o very_a abbess_n exercise_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n over_o her_o nun_n while_o all_o the_o mariner_n be_v busy_v in_o their_o several_a employment_n the_o sovereign_a magistrate_n sit_v at_o the_o stern_a to_o command_v all_o and_o order_n all_o for_o the_o promotion_n of_o the_o great_a architectonicall_a end_n that_o be_v the_o safety_n and_o welfare_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n it_o follow_v in_o the_o o●th_v as_o well_o as_o temporal_a that_o be_v as_o true_o and_o as_o just_o but_o not_o as_o full_o nor_o as_o absolute_o and_n that_o no_o foreign_a prelate_n have_v or_o aught_o to_o have_v any_o jurisdiction_n or_o authority_n ecclesiastical_a or_o spiritual_a within_o this_o realm_n that_o be_v to_o say_v neither_o the_o pope_n nor_o his_o court._n for_o a_o general_a council_n which_o be_v no_o stand_a court_n but_o a_o aggregate_v body_n compose_v partly_o of_o ourselves_o be_v neither_o include_v here_o nor_o intend_v if_o this_o be_v the_o new_a creed_n of_o the_o english_a protestant_a church_n as_o he_o call_v it_o in_o scorn_n it_o be_v the_o old_a creed_n of_o the_o britannic_a church_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v evident_o in_o the_o vindication_n if_o this_o profession_n of_o royal_a supremacy_n in_o our_o sense_n do_v make_v man_n heretic_n and_o schismatic_n we_o shall_v sweep_v away_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o roman_a doctor_n along_o with_o we_o and_o for_o sovereign_a prince_n we_o shall_v leave_v they_o few_o except_o some_o necessitous_a person_n who_o can_v not_o subsist_v otherwise_o then_o by_o the_o favourable_a influence_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n 37_o very_o many_o doctor_n do_v hold_v that_o for_o the_o common_a good_a of_o the_o republic_n prince_n have_v jurisdiction_n in_o many_o cause_n otherwise_o subject_a to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a court_n not_o only_o by_o the_o positive_a law_n of_o god_n but_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o many_o more_o give_v they_o a_o power_n indirect_o in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a over_o ecclesiastical_a person_n so_o far_o as_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n nec_fw-la putem_fw-la ullum_fw-la doctorem_fw-la catholicum_fw-la refragari_fw-la ibidem_fw-la say_v the_o same_o author_n in_o the_o place_n cite_v neither_o do_v i_o think_v that_o any_o catholic_n doctor_n will_v be_v against_o it_o now_o i_o have_v say_v my_o mind_n concern_v the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n who_o they_o be_v that_o first_o contrive_v it_o and_o in_o what_o sense_n we_o do_v maintain_v it_o i_o hope_v agreable_o to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n except_o such_o as_o be_v prepossess_v with_o prejudice_n for_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n as_o our_o king_n out_o of_o reverence_n to_o christ_n do_v free_o lay_v by_o the_o title_n of_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o english_a church_n so_o though_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v for_o i_o to_o prevent_v their_o mature_a determination_n i_o shall_v not_o be_v displease_v if_o out_o of_o a_o tender_a consideration_n of_o the_o conscience_n of_o subject_n who_o may_v err_v out_o of_o invincible_a ignorance_n they_o will_v be_v please_v to_o lay_v by_o the_o oath_n also_o god_n look_v upon_o his_o creature_n with_o all_o their_o prejudices_fw-la why_o shall_v not_o man_n do_v the_o
they_o to_o all_o these_o i_o have_v answer_v former_o in_o this_o treatise_n and_o therefore_o now_o i_o shall_v touch_v they_o more_o light_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o catholic_n church_n he_o prove_v thus_o church_n because_o it_o be_v a_o company_n of_o christian_n institute_v by_o christ_n spread_v over_o the_o world_n and_o entire_o unite_v in_o the_o profession_n of_o faith_n and_o communion_n of_o his_o sacrament_n under_o his_o officer_n and_o therefore_o he_o bid_v we_o out_o of_o st._n austin_n 6._o either_o give_v or_o take_v either_o receive_v their_o church_n or_o show_v one_o of_o our_o own_o as_o good_a this_o argument_n be_v ground_v upon_o a_o wrong_a supposition_n that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v a_o church_n of_o one_o denonination_n as_o roman_a or_o grecian_a etc._n etc._n which_o we_o do_v altogether_o deny_v as_o imply_v a_o evident_a contradiction_n second_o we_o deny_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n include_v the_o papacy_n in_o respect_n of_o which_o it_o challenge_v this_o universality_n and_o to_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o the_o mistress_n of_o all_o other_o church_n be_v institute_v by_o christ_n or_o by_o his_o church_n this_o be_v their_o own_o usurpation_n three_o we_o deny_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v spread_v over_o the_o world_n divide_v christendom_n into_o five_o part_n and_o in_o four_o of_o they_o they_o have_v very_o little_a or_o nothing_o to_o do_v perhaps_o they_o have_v here_o a_o monastery_n or_o there_o a_o final_a handful_n of_o proselyte_n but_o what_o be_v five_o or_o six_o person_n to_o so_o many_o million_o of_o christian_a soul_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v catholic_n and_o not_o all_o the_o other_o this_o be_v not_o the_o meaning_n of_o saint_n austin_n in_o the_o place_n allege_v date_fw-la ni_fw-fr hi_o hanc_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la si_fw-la apud_fw-la vos_fw-la est_fw-la ostendite_fw-la vos_fw-la ommunicare_fw-la omnibus_fw-la gentibus_fw-la quas_fw-la jam_fw-la videmus_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la semine_fw-la benedici_fw-la date_fw-la hanc_fw-la aut_fw-la furore_fw-la deposito_fw-la accipite_fw-la non_fw-la a_o i_o sed_fw-la ab_fw-la illo_fw-la ipso_fw-la in_o quo_fw-la benedicuntur_fw-la omnes_fw-la gentes_fw-la give_v i_o this_o church_n if_o it_o be_v with_o you_o show_v that_o you_o communicate_v withal_o nation_n which_o we_o see_v to_o be_v bless_v in_o this_o seed_n it_o be_v not_o a_o few_o particular_a person_n nor_o some_o handful_n of_o proselyte_n but_o multitude_n of_o christian_a nation_n that_o make_v the_o catholic_a church_n the_o romanist_n be_v so_o far_o from_o communicate_v with_o all_o these_o nation_n that_o they_o excommunicate_v the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o they_o four_o we_o deny_v that_o such_o a_o exact_a entire_a union_n in_o all_o point_n and_o opinion_n which_o be_v not_o essentials_n of_o christian_a religion_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o catholic_a church_n or_o that_o the_o romanist_n have_v a_o great_a unity_n among_o themselves_o or_o with_o other_o then_o sundry_a of_o those_o church_n which_o they_o have_v excommunicate_v five_o i_o deny_v that_o the_o officer_n of_o the_o conrt_n of_o rome_n or_o any_o of_o they_o qua_fw-la tale_n be_v either_o the_o officer_n of_o christ_n or_o of_o his_o church_n and_o last_o if_o all_o this_o be_v true_a well_o may_v it_o prove_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n a_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o not_o the_o catholic_a or_o universal_a church_n still_o there_o will_v want_v universality_n to_o be_v spread_v through_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o to_o be_v the_o common_a faith_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n another_o thing_n second_o protestann_n he_o prove_v that_o they_o do_v not_o exclude_v we_o but_o that_o we_o do_v separate_v ourselves_o because_o england_n deny_v the_o pope_n sovereignty_n by_o divine_a right_n before_o the_o pope_n excommunicate_v they_o and_o so_o though_o it_o be_v not_o perfect_o protestant_a yet_o it_o be_v substantial_o protestant_n i_o take_v he_o at_o his_o word_n then_o all_o the_o eastern_a northern_a and_o ethiopic_a christian_n be_v substantial_o protestant_n as_o well_v as_o we_o for_o they_o all_o deny_v the_o pope_n sovereignty_n either_o by_o divine_a or_o humane_a right_n then_o all_o the_o world_n be_v substantial_o protestant_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basile_n except_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o officer_n then_o we_o want_v not_o brother_n that_o be_v substantial_o protestant_n as_o well_v as_o we_o in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n at_o this_o day_n to_o seek_v to_o obtrude_v this_o spiritual_a monarchy_n upon_o we_o be_v causal_n schism_n to_o excommunicate_v we_o for_o deny_v it_o be_v actual_a schism_n essentials_n to_o prove_v that_o we_o have_v depart_v from_o they_o in_o essentials_n he_o only_o say_v that_o we_o have_v leave_v they_o simple_o absolute_o nay_o whole_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o sacrament_n and_o public_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o the_o entire_a profession_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v essentials_n to_o a_o church_n how_o often_o have_v this_o be_v answer_v already_o that_o every_o opinion_n which_o a_o particular_a church_n do_v profess_v to_o be_v essential_a be_v either_o a_o essential_a or_o a_o truth_n or_o that_o every_o abuse_v creep_v into_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v that_o to_o which_o we_o can_v never_o give_v as●ent_v let_v they_o keep_v themselves_o to_o the_o ancient_a creed_n of_o the_o church_n as_o they_o be_v command_v by_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o we_o shall_v quick_o join_v with_o they_o in_o profession_n of_o faith_n let_v they_o use_v the_o ancient_a form_n of_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o the_o primitive_a roman_a church_n do_v use_v and_o we_o shall_v not_o forbear_v their_o communion_n in_o sacrament_n do_v the_o ancient_a roman_a church_n want_v any_o essentials_n or_o be_v the_o primitive_a roman_a and_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n divide_v in_o essential_o if_o they_o differ_v in_o essentials_n than_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o join_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n if_o they_o differ_v not_o in_o essentials_n no_o more_o do_v we_o three_o he_o prove_v that_o the_o other_o patriarchates_n be_v not_o the_o catholic_n church_n not_o true_a part_n thereof_o because_o they_o be_v divide_v in_o profession_n of_o faith_n in_o communion_n of_o sacrament_n and_o in_o church_n officer_n yea_o say_v he_o it_o be_v dotage_n to_o think_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n can_v consist_v of_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a church_n as_o i_o can_v deny_v but_o they_o be_v except_o i_o will_v deny_v the_o thirty_o nine_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o which_o i_o have_v swear_v i_o answer_v that_o those_o church_n which_o he_o be_v please_v to_o undervalue_v so_o much_o do_v agree_v better_a both_o among_o themselves_o and_o with_o other_o church_n than_o the_o roman_a church_n itself_o church_n both_o in_o profession_n of_o faith_n for_o they_o and_o we_o do_v general_o acknowledge_v the_o same_o ancient_a creed_n and_o no_o other_o and_o in_o inferior_a question_n be_v free_a from_o the_o intricate_a and_o perplex_a difficulty_n of_o the_o roman_a school_n in_o point_n of_o discipline_n they_o have_v no_o complaint_n against_o they_o save_v that_o they_o &_o we_o do_v unanimous_o refuse_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o spiritual_a monarchy_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n and_o concern_v the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n i_o know_v no_o objection_n of_o any_o great_a moment_n which_o they_o produce_v against_o they_o how_o shall_v they_o when_o the_o pope_n allow_v the_o russian_n the_o exercise_n of_o the_o greek_a religion_n it_o be_v true_a that_o they_o use_v many_o rite_n which_o we_o forbear_v but_o difference_n in_o rite_n be_v no_o breach_n of_o communion_n nor_o need_v to_o be_v for_o any_o thing_n that_o i_o know_v if_o distance_n of_o place_n and_o difference_n of_o language_n be_v not_o a_o great_a impediment_n to_o our_o actual_a communion_n so_o long_o as_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o mutilate_v nor_o sinful_a duty_n enjoin_v nor_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n purposely_o use_v how_o be_v they_o then_o schismatical_a church_n only_o because_o they_o deny_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n or_o how_o be_v they_o heretical_a church_n some_o of_o they_o be_v call_v nestorian_n but_o most_o injurious_o who_o have_v nothing_o of_o nestorius_n but_o the_o name_n other_o have_v be_v suspect_v of_o eutychianism_n and_o yet_o in_o truth_n orthodox_n enough_o they_o do_v not_o add_v the_o word_n filioque_fw-la and_o from_o the_o son_n to_o the_o creed_n and_o yet_o they_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o son_n which_o be_v the_o
counterfeit_a and_o if_o genuine_a whether_o melancthons_n word_n be_v right_o rehearse_v and_o if_o right_o rehearse_v at_o what_o time_n it_o be_v write_v whether_o before_o he_o be_v a_o form_v protestant_n or_o after_o it_o appear_v plain_o in_o the_o word_n here_o cite_v that_o melancthon_n be_v willing_a to_o acknowledge_v the_o papacy_n only_o as_o a_o canonical_a policy_n and_o so_o we_o do_v not_o condemn_v it_o while_o it_o be_v bound_v by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o father_n but_o then_o where_o be_v their_o jus_o divinum_fw-la or_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n where_o be_v their_o absolute_a or_o universal_a sovereignty_n of_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n in_o all_o probability_n if_o these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o melancthon_n his_o meaning_n be_v confine_v to_o the_o roman_a patriarchate_n which_o be_v all_o the_o church_n that_o he_o be_v much_o acquaint_v with_o and_o that_o either_o these_o be_v none_o of_o his_o word_n or_o that_o they_o be_v write_v before_o he_o be_v a_o form_v protestant_n or_o that_o he_o intend_v only_o the_o roman_a patriarchate_n be_v most_o evident_a from_o his_o late_a and_o undoubted_a write_n wherein_o he_o do_v utter_o and_o constant_o condemn_v the_o papal_a universal_a monarchy_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n dangerous_a and_o last_o what_o melancthon_n faith_n be_v only_o in_o point_n of_o prudence_n or_o discretion_n he_o think_v no_o wise_a man_n ought_v to_o dislike_v it_o we_o be_v not_o so_o stupid_a as_o not_o to_o see_v but_o that_o some_o good_a use_n may_v be_v make_v of_o a_o exordium_n unitatis_fw-la ecclesiasticae_fw-la especial_o at_o this_o time_n when_o the_o civil_a power_n be_v so_o much_o divide_v and_o distract_v but_o the_o quere_z be_v even_o in_o point_n of_o prudence_n whether_o more_o good_a or_o hurt_n may_v proceed_v from_o it_o we_o have_v be_v teach_v by_o experience_n to_o fear_v three_o danger_n first_o when_o we_o give_v a_o inch_n they_o be_v apt_a to_o take_v a_o ell_n tyrant_n be_v not_o often_o bear_v with_o their_o tooth_n as_o richard_n the_o the_o three_o be_v but_o grow_v up_o to_o their_o excess_n in_o process_n of_o time_n second_o when_o we_o give_v a_o free_a alm_n as_o peterpence_n be_v of_o old_a they_o straightway_n interpret_v it_o to_o be_v a_o tribute_n and_o duty_n three_o what_o we_o give_v by_o humane_a right_n they_o challenge_v by_o divine_a right_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o so_o will_v not_o leave_v we_o free_a to_o move_v our_o rudder_n according_a to_o the_o variable_a face_n of_o the_o heaven_n and_o the_o vicissitude_n of_o humane_a affair_n these_o be_v all_o the_o testimony_n which_o he_o cit_v but_o he_o present_v unto_o we_o another_o dumb_a show_n of_o english_a author_n in_o the_o margin_n whitaker_n laude_n potter_n chillingworth_n montague_n beside_o some_o foreigner_n but_o if_o the_o reader_n do_v put_v himself_o to_o the_o trouble_n to_o search_v the_o several_a place_n notwithstanding_o these_o title_n or_o superscription_n he_o will_v find_v the_o box_n all_o empty_a without_o one_o word_n to_o the_o purpose_n as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v cite_v by_o chance_n and_o not_o by_o choice_n and_o if_o he_o shall_v take_v in_o all_o the_o other_o write_n of_o these_o several_a author_n they_o will_v not_o advantage_v his_o cause_n at_o all_o bishop_n montague_n be_v esteem_v one_o of_o the_o most_o indulgent_a to_o he_o among_o they_o though_o in_o truth_n one_o of_o his_o sad_a adversary_n yet_o i_o be_o confident_a he_o dare_v not_o stand_v to_o his_o verdict_n 185._o habeat_fw-la potestatem_fw-la ordinis_fw-la directionis_fw-la consiliis_fw-la consultationis_fw-la conclusionis_fw-la executionis_fw-la dellegatam_fw-la subsit_fw-la autem_fw-la illa_fw-la potestas_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la auferibilis_fw-la sit_fw-la per_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la cum_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la in_o divinis_fw-la scripture_n instituta_fw-la non_fw-la petro_n personaliter_fw-la addicta_fw-la let_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v delegated_a unto_o he_o that_o be_v by_o the_o church_n a_o power_n of_o order_n direction_n counsel_n consultation_n conclusion_n or_o pronounce_v sentence_n and_o put_v in_o execution_n but_o let_v that_o power_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o church_n let_v it_o be_v in_o the_o church_n power_n to_o take_v it_o away_o see_v it_o be_v not_o institute_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n nor_o tie_v personal_o unto_o peter_n conclusion_n to_o conclude_v the_o same_o advise_v which_o he_o give_v unto_o i_o i_o return_v unto_o himself_o attendite_fw-la ad_fw-la petram_fw-la unde_fw-la excisi_fw-la estis_fw-la look_v unto_o the_o rock_n whence_o you_o be_v hew_v look_v unto_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o remember_v that_o the_o law_n come_v out_o of_o zion_n and_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n out_o of_o jerusalem_n look_v unto_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n where_o the_o disciple_n be_v first_o call_v christian_n look_v unto_o the_o other_o eastern_a church_n in_o who_o region_n the_o son_n of_o righteousness_n do_v shine_v when_o the_o day_n of_o christianity_n do_v but_o begin_v to_o dawn_n in_o your_o caost_n look_v to_o the_o primitive_a church_n of_o rome_n itself_o who_o faith_n be_v speak_v of_o throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o need_v not_o the_o supplementall_a article_n of_o pius_n the_o 4_o the_o last_o look_v unto_o the_o true_a catholic_a ecumenical_a church_n who_o priveleges_n you_o have_v usurp_v and_o seek_v not_o to_o exclude_v so_o many_o million_o of_o christian_n from_o the_o hope_n of_o salvation_n and_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n passion_n in_o who_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v to_o be_v bless_v this_o indeed_o be_v the_o only_a secure_a way_n both_o to_o unity_n and_o salvation_n to_o keep_v that_o entire_a form_n of_o doctrine_n without_o addition_n or_o diminution_n which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o save_v the_o holy_a apostle_n which_o be_v by_o they_o contract_v into_o a_o summary_n and_o deposit_v with_o the_o church_n to_o be_v the_o true_a badge_n and_o cognisance_n of_o all_o christian_n in_o all_o succeed_a age_n more_o than_o which_o the_o primitive_a father_n or_o rather_o the_o representative_a church_n of_o christ_n do_v forbid_v to_o be_v exact_v of_o any_o person_n that_o be_v convert_v from_o jewism_n or_o paganism_n to_o christianity_n and_o as_o many_o as_o walk_v according_a to_o this_o rule_n of_o faith_n peace_n be_v upon_o they_o and_o mercy_n and_o upon_o the_o israel_n of_o god_n finis_fw-la a_o reply_n to_o s._n ws._n refutation_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o derry_n just_a vindication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o most_o of_o s._n w_n s._n exception_n have_v be_v already_o large_o and_o particnlar_o satisfy_v in_o the_o fotm_a reply_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o chalcedon_n yet_o lest_o any_o thing_n of_o moment_n may_v escape_v a_o answer_n i_o will_v review_v they_o and_o answer_v they_o general_o and_o succinct_o as_o they_o be_v propose_v by_o he_o to_o his_o title_n of_o down_o derry_o i_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v but_o that_o it_o be_v strange_a if_o he_o shall_v throw_v a_o good_a cast_n who_o seal_v his_o bowl_n upon_o a_o undersong_n sect._n 1_o in_o the_o first_o place_n he_o profess_v to_o show_v the_o impertinency_n of_o my_o ground_n and_o to_o stick_v the_o guilt_n of_o schism_n not_o only_o with_o colour_n but_o with_o undeniable_a evidence_n upon_o the_o english_a church_n by_o the_o very_a position_n of_o the_o case_n or_o state_v of_o the_o question_n between_o we_o and_o this_o he_o call_v a_o little_a after_o their_o chief_a objection_n against_o we_o what_o then_o be_v state_v of_o the_o question_n and_o object_v all_o one_o i_o confess_v the_o right_a position_n of_o a_o case_n may_v dispel_v umbrage_n and_o reconcile_v controversy_n and_o bring_v much_o light_n to_o the_o truth_n but_o as_o the_o lion_n ask_v the_o man_n in_o the_o fable_n who_o make_v the_o picture_n we_o may_v crave_v leave_n to_o demand_v who_o shall_v put_v this_o case_n sure_o he_o mean_v a_o roman_n catholic_n for_o if_o a_o protestant_a state_n it_o it_o will_v not_o be_v so_o much_o for_o their_o advantage_n nor_o the_o bare_a proposition_n of_o it_o bear_v such_o undeniable_a evidence_n in_o it_o i_o hope_v a_o man_n may_v view_v this_o engine_n without_o danger_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o henry_n the_o eighths_n reign_n and_o immediate_o before_o his_o sustraction_n of_o obedience_n from_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n the_o church_n of_o england_n agree_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o the_o res●_n of_o her_o communion_n in_o two_o point_n which_o be_v then_o and_o still_o be_v the_o bond_n of_o unity_n betwixt_o all_o her_o member_n the_o one_o concern_v faith_n the_o other_o government_n for_o faith_n her_o rule_n be_v that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o have_v be_v inherit_v from_o their_o forefather_n as_o the_o legacy_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v sole_o
beatissimus_fw-la et_fw-la apostolicus_n vir_fw-la papa_n hoc_fw-la nobis_fw-la praecipit_fw-la nec_fw-la additur_fw-la leo_fw-la aut_fw-la romanus_n aut_fw-la nobis_fw-la romae_fw-la aut_fw-la aliquid_fw-la aliud_fw-la when_o the_o word_n pope_n be_v put_v alone_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n only_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v as_o appear_v out_o of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n the_o most_o bless_a and_o apostolical_a man_n the_o pope_n do_v command_v we_o this_o neither_o be_v there_o add_a pope_n leo_n or_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n or_o the_o pope_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n or_o any_o other_o thing_n his_o second_o exception_n have_v no_o more_o weight_n than_o the_o former_a that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o bishopric_n as_o caerleon_n in_o those_o day_n the_o see_v be_v translate_v 50._o year_n before_o that_o to_o st._n david_n where_o be_v the_o contradiction_n the_o name_n of_o the_o old_a diocese_n be_v caerleon_n the_o new_a see_v or_o throne_n be_v the_o new_a abbey_n church_n erect_v a●_n menevia_n which_o place_n posterity_n call_v st._n david_n but_o st._n david_n can_v not_o be_v call_v st._n david_n whilst_o he_o himself_o live_v nor_o afterward_o until_o custom_n and_o tract_n of_o time_n have_v confirm_v such_o a_o appellation_n some_o will_v make_v we_o believe_v that_o st._n david_n and_o st._n greg●ry_n die_v upon_o the_o same_o day_n and_o then_o he_o be_v still_o live_v when_o dinoth_n give_v this_o answer_n but_o let_v that_o be_v as_o it_o will_v for_o it_o be_v not_o much_o material_a st._n david_n after_o the_o translation_n of_o his_o see_v die_v archbishop_n of_o caerleon_n 3._o tunc_fw-la obi●t_fw-la sanctissimus_fw-la vrbis_fw-la legionum_fw-la archiepiscopus_fw-la david_n in_fw-la meneviae_fw-la civitate_fw-la etc._n etc._n then_o die_v the_o most_o holy_a archbishop_n of_o caerleon_n st._n david_n in_o the_o city_n of_o menevia_n 106_o and_o long_o after_o his_o death_n it_o still_o retain_v the_o name_n of_o caerleon_n even_o after_o it_o be_v common_o call_v st._n david_n so_o much_o sr._n henry_n spilman_n may_v have_v put_v he_o in_o mind_n of_o discesserat_fw-la ante_fw-la haec_fw-la dignitas_fw-la a_o caerlegione_fw-la ad_fw-la land●viam_fw-la sub_fw-la dubr●tio_fw-la et_fw-la mox_fw-la ●_o landavia_n ad_fw-la meneviam_fw-la cum_fw-la sancto_fw-la davide_n etc._n etc._n sed_fw-la retento_fw-mi pariter_fw-la caerlegionis_fw-la titulo_fw-la and_o lest_o he_o shall_v account_v sr._n henry_n spilman_n partial_a let_v he_o hear_v giraldus_n cambrensis_fw-la habuimus_fw-la apud_fw-la meneviam_fw-la vrbis_fw-la legionum_fw-la archiepiscopos_fw-la successive_a viginti_fw-la quinque_fw-la 3._o quorum_fw-la primus_fw-la fuit_fw-la sanctus_fw-la david_n etc._n etc._n we_o have_v at_o menevia_n five_o and_o twenty_o archbishop_n of_o caerleon_n whereof_o st._n david_n be_v the_o first_o what_o can_v be_v more_o plain_a shall_v a_o man_n condemn_v every_o author_n forcounterfeit_v wherein_o st._n alban_n be_v call_v verolam_n present_o after_o st._n alban_n death_n it_o be_v a_o ordinary_a thing_n for_o the_o same_o city_n to_o have_v two_o name_n and_o much_o more_o the_o same_o bishopric_n one_o from_o the_o old_a see_v another_o from_o the_o new_a or_o one_o from_o the_o diocese_n another_o from_o the_o see_v as_o the_o bishop_n of_o ossory_n or_o kilkenny_n indifferent_o his_o three_o exception_n be_v so_o slight_a that_o i_o can_v find_v the_o edge_n of_o it_o because_o sr._n henry_n spilman_n find_v no_o other_o antiquity_n in_o it_o worth_a the_o mention_n which_o shrewd_o imply_v that_o the_o book_n be_v make_v for_o this_o alone_a and_o how_o do_v he_o know_v that_o sr._n henry_n spilman_n find_v no_o other_o antiquity_n in_o it_o there_o may_v be_v many_o other_o british_a antiquity_n in_o it_o and_o yet_o not_o proper_a for_o a_o collection_n of_o ecclesiastical_a counsel_n or_o if_o there_o have_v be_v no_o other_o antiquity_n in_o it_o will_v he_o condemn_v his_o creed_n for_o a_o counterfeit_n because_o it_o be_v not_o huddle_v together_o confuse_o with_o some_o other_o treatise_n in_o one_o volume_n but_o to_o demonstrate_v evident_o to_o he_o how_o vain_a all_o his_o trifle_n be_v against_o the_o testimony_n of_o dionothus_n why_o do_v he_o not_o answer_v the_o coroberatory_n proof_n which_o i_o bring_v out_o of_o venerable_a bede_n and_o other_o of_o two_o british_a synod_n hold_v at_o the_o same_o time_n wherein_o all_o the_o british_a clergy_n do_v renounce_v all_o obedience_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n of_o which_o all_o our_o historiographer_n do_v bear_v witness_n why_o do_v he_o not_o answer_v this_o but_o pass_v by_o it_o in_o so_o great_a silence_n he_o may_v as_o well_o accuse_v this_o of_o forgery_n as_o the_o other_o since_o it_o be_v so_o well_o attest_v that_o dionothus_n be_v a_o great_a actor_n and_o disputer_n in_o that_o business_n sect._n 5._o in_o my_o six_o chapter_n i_o prove_v three_o thing_n first_o that_o the_o king_n and_o church_n of_o england_n have_v sufficient_a authority_n to_o withdraw_v their_o obedience_n from_o the_o roman_a patriarch_n second_o that_o they_o have_v just_a ground_n to_o do_v it_o and_o three_o that_o they_o do_v it_o with_o due_a moderation_n concern_v the_o first_o point_n he_o charge_v i_o the_o second_o time_n for_o insist_v upon_o a_o wrong_a plea_n that_o be_v their_o patriarchal_a authority_n which_o he_o confess_v to_o be_v humane_a and_o mutable_a i_o have_v former_o intimate_v why_o they_o be_v so_o loath_a to_o entertain_v any_o discourse_n concern_v the_o pope_n patriarchate_o because_o they_o know_v not_o how_o to_o reconcile_v a_o monarchy_n of_o divine_a institution_n with_o a_o aristocracy_n of_o humane_a institution_n when_o i_o first_o undertake_v this_o subject_n i_o conceive_v that_o the_o great_a strength_n of_o the_o roman_a samson_n do_v lie_v in_o his_o patriarchate_n but_o since_o this_o refuter_fw-la quit_v it_o as_o the_o pope_n himself_o have_v do_v not_o for_o six_o hundred_o year_n only_o he_o speak_v too_o spare_o but_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n ever_o since_o phocas_n make_v boniface_n universal_a bishop_n i_o be_o well_o content_v to_o give_v over_o that_o subject_n upon_o these_o two_o condition_n first_o that_o he_o do_v not_o presume_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o spiritual_a monarch_n without_o prove_v it_o second_o that_o he_o do_v not_o attempt_v to_o make_v patriarchal_a privilege_n to_o be_v royal_a prerogative_n yet_o he_o will_v not_o leave_v this_o humane_a right_n before_o we_o have_v resolve_v he_o three_o question_n first_o say_v he_o suppose_v the_o christian_a world_n have_v choose_v to_o themselves_o one_o head_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o unity_n in_o religion_n what_o wrong_v must_v that_o head_n do_v to_o be_v sufficient_a ground_n both_o for_o the_o deposition_n of_o the_o person_n and_o abolition_n of_o the_o government_n nay_o put_v the_o case_n right_a suppose_v the_o christian_a world_n shall_v choose_v one_o for_o order_n sake_n to_o be_v their_o precedent_n or_o prolocuter_n in_o their_o general_n assembly_n and_o he_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o make_v himself_o their_o prince_n upon_o some_o feign_a title_n do_v not_o he_o deserve_v to_o be_v turn_v out_o of_o his_o employment_n &_o if_o they_o find_v it_o expedient_a to_o have_v another_o choose_v in_o his_o place_n second_o he_o suppose_v that_o this_o alteration_n shall_v be_v make_v by_o some_o one_o party_n of_o the_o christian_a commonwealth_n which_o must_v separate_v itself_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o christianity_n ought_v not_o far_o weighty_a cause_n than_o these_o to_o be_v expect_v one_o mistake_n beget_v another_o as_o one_o circle_n in_o the_o water_n do_v produce_v another's_o we_o have_v make_v no_o such_o separation_n from_o any_o just_a authority_n institute_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n we_o nourish_v a_o more_o catholic_n communion_n then_o themselves_o but_o if_o our_o steward_n will_v forsake_v we_o because_o we_o will_v not_o give_v he_o leave_v to_o become_v our_o master_n who_o can_v help_v it_o three_o he_o suppose_v that_o by_o set_v aside_o this_o supreme_a head_n eternal_a dissension_n will_v inevitable_o follow_v in_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o then_o demand_v whether_o the_o refusal_n to_o comply_v with_o the_o humour_n of_o a_o lustful_a prince_n be_v ground_n enough_o to_o renounce_v so_o necessary_a a_o authority_n how_o shall_v the_o refusal_n to_o comply_v be_v any_o such_o ground_n certain_o he_o mean_v the_o compliance_n with_o the_o humour_n of_o a_o lustful_a prince_n i_o pass_v by_o the_o extravagancy_n of_o the_o expression_n whatsoever_o they_o have_v say_v or_o can_v say_v concern_v henry_n the_o eight_o so_o far_o as_o it_o may_v reflect_v upon_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v clear_v in_o my_o reply_n to_o r.c._n first_o he_o beg_v the_o question_n christ_n never_o institute_v the_o apostle_n never_o constitute_v the_o catholic_a church_n never_o acknowledge_v any_o such_o supreme_a head_n of_o power_n and_o
jurisdiction_n second_o the_o church_n and_o kingdom_n of_o england_n have_v more_o lawful_a just_a and_o noble_a ground_n for_o their_o separation_n from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n than_o any_o base_a parasitical_a compliance_n with_o the_o humour_n of_o any_o prince_n whatsoever_o as_o he_o can_v choose_v but_o see_v in_o this_o very_a chapter_n but_o who_o be_v so_o blind_a as_o he_o that_o will_v not_o see_v three_o we_o do_v confess_v that_o the_o primitive_a papacy_n that_o be_v a_o exordium_n unitatis_fw-la a_o beginning_n of_o unity_n be_v a_o excellent_a mean_n of_o concord_n we_o do_v not_o envy_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o any_o honour_n which_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v allow_v he_o but_o modern_a papacy_n which_o they_o seek_v to_o obtrude_v upon_o we_o be_v rather_o as_o nilus_n say_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o dissension_n primatis_fw-la and_o controversy_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n last_o to_o his_o demand_n concern_v the_o english_a court_n and_o church_n whether_o i_o will_v condescend_v to_o the_o rejection_n of_o monarchy_n and_o to_o the_o extirpation_n of_o episcopacy_n for_o the_o misgovernment_n of_o prince_n or_o abuse_n of_o prelate_n i_o answer_v no_o but_o this_o will_v not_o advantage_v his_o cause_n at_o all_o for_o three_o reason_n first_o never_o be_v any_o such_o abuse_n as_o these_o object_v either_o to_o prince_n or_o prelate_n in_o england_n second_o we_o seek_v not_o the_o extirpation_n of_o the_o papacy_n but_o the_o reduction_n of_o it_o to_o the_o primitive_a constitution_n three_o monarchy_n and_o episcopacy_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n so_o be_v not_o a_o papal_a sovereignty_n of_o jurisdiction_n his_o parliamentary_a prelacy_n have_v more_o sound_a than_o weight_n we_o need_v not_o be_v behold_v to_o parliament_n for_o the_o justification_n of_o our_o prelacy_n as_o he_o will_v find_v that_o undertake_v it_o sect._n 6._o we_o be_v now_o come_v to_o the_o ground_n of_o our_o separation_n from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n reader_n observe_v and_o wonder_v all_o this_o while_n they_o have_v be_v call_v to_o we_o for_o our_o ground_n they_o have_v declaim_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o just_a ground_n of_o such_o a_o separation_n they_o have_v declare_v in_o the_o hypothesis_n that_o we_o have_v no_o ground_n but_o to_o comply_v with_o the_o humour_n of_o a_o lustful_a prince_n now_o we_o present_v our_o ground_n be_v reduce_v to_o five_o head_n first_o the_o most_o intolerable_a extortion_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n commit_v from_o age_n to_o age_n without_o hope_n of_o remedy_n second_o their_o most_o unjust_a usurpation_n of_o all_o right_n civil_a ecclesiastical_a sacred_a and_o profane_a of_o all_o order_n of_o man_n king_n nobles_z bishop_n etc._n etc._n three_o the_o malignant_a influence_n and_o effect_n of_o this_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n destructive_a to_o the_o right_a end_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n produce_v dis-union_n in_o the_o realm_n faction_n &_o animosity_n between_o the_o crown_n and_o the_o mitre_n intestine_a discord_n between_o the_o king_n and_o his_o baron_n bad_a intelligence_n with_o neighbour_n prince_n and_o foreign_a war_n four_o a_o list_n of_o other_o inconvenience_n or_o rather_o mischief_n that_o do_v flow_v from_o thence_o as_o to_o be_v daily_o subject_a to_o have_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n obtrude_v upon_o they_o expose_v to_o manifest_a peril_n of_o idolatry_n to_o forsake_v the_o communion_n of_o three_o part_n of_o christendom_n to_o approve_v the_o pope_n rebellion_n against_o general_a counsel_n and_o to_o have_v their_o bishop_n take_v a_o oath_n contrary_a to_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n to_o maintain_v the_o pope_n in_o his_o rebellious_a usurpation_n last_o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o pope_n pretence_n and_o the_o exemption_n of_o the_o brittannique_a church_n from_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o general_n council_n of_o ephesus_n certain_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v show_v either_o that_o these_o ground_n conjoin_v be_v not_o sufficient_a or_o that_o they_o be_v not_o true_a or_o that_o there_o be_v other_o remedy_n but_o he_o be_v well_o content_v to_o pass_v by_o they_o all_o in_o silence_n which_o be_v as_o mueh_a as_o yield_v the_o cause_n thus_o he_o it_o be_v then_o of_o little_a concernment_n to_o examine_v whether_o his_o complaint_n be_v true_a or_o false_a since_o he_o do_v not_o show_v there_o be_v no_o other_o remedy_n but_o division_n what_o be_v it_o of_o little_a concernment_n to_o examine_v whether_o the_o ground_n be_v sufficient_a or_o no_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o i_o to_o show_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o remedy_n that_o be_v to_o prove_v a_o negative_a but_o if_o he_o will_v answer_v my_o ground_n it_o belong_v to_o he_o to_o show_v that_o there_o be_v other_o remedy_n yet_o so_o far_o as_o a_o negative_a be_v capable_a of_o proof_n i_o have_v show_v even_o in_o this_o chapter_n that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o remedy_n i_o show_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o court_n be_v not_o under_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o king_n or_o church_n of_o england_n so_o as_o to_o call_v they_o to_o a_o personal_a account_n i_o show_v that_o the_o english_a nation_n have_v make_v their_o address_n to_o the_o pope_n in_o council_n out_o of_o council_n for_o ease_v from_o their_o oppression_n in_o diversage_n and_o never_o find_v any_o but_o what_o they_o carve_v out_o to_o themselves_o at_o home_n after_o this_o manner_n he_o add_v and_o much_o more_o since_o it_o be_v know_v if_o the_o authority_n be_v of_o christ_n institution_n no_o just_a cause_n can_v possible_o be_v give_v for_o its_o abolishment_n this_o be_v a_o very_a euthumematical_a kind_n of_o argue_v if_o the_o sky_n fall_v we_o shall_v have_v lark_n he_o know_v right_a well_o that_o it_o be_v his_o assumption_n which_o be_v latent_fw-la that_o we_o deny_v that_o we_o have_v abolish_v any_o thing_n which_o either_o christ_n or_o his_o church_n do_v institute_v he_o proceed_v but_o most_o because_o all_o other_o catholic_n country_n may_v have_v make_v the_o same_o exception_n which_o england_n pretend_v yet_o they_o remain_v still_o in_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o after_o we_o have_v break_v the_o ice_n do_v not_o hold_v it_o reasonable_a to_o follow_v our_o example_n few_o or_o no_o catholic_n country_n have_v sustain_v so_o great_a oppression_n from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n as_o england_n have_v which_o the_o pope_n himself_o call_v his_o garden_n of_o delight_n a_o well_o that_o can_v not_o be_v draw_v dry_a all_o other_o country_n have_v not_o right_a to_o the_o cyprian_a privilege_n to_o be_v exempt_a from_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n as_o britain_n have_v yet_o all_o other_o catholic_n country_n do_v maintain_v their_o own_o privilege_n inviolated_a and_o make_v themselves_o the_o last_o judge_n of_o their_o grievance_n from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n some_o other_o catholic_n country_n know_v how_o to_o make_v better_a use_n of_o the_o papacy_n than_o england_n do_v yet_o england_n be_v not_o alone_o in_o the_o separation_n so_o long_o as_o all_o the_o eastern_a southern_a northern_a and_o so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o the_o western_a church_n have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o be_v separate_v by_o they_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o well_o as_o we_o yet_o if_o it_o be_v otherwise_o we_o must_v live_v by_o precept_n not_o by_o example_n nay_o say_v he_o the_o former_a age_n of_o our_o country_n have_v the_o same_o cause_n to_o cast_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n out_o of_o the_o land_n yet_o rather_o prefer_v to_o continue_v in_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n then_o attempt_v so_o destructive_a a_o innovation_n mistake_v not_o we_o so_o much_o we_o desire_v to_o live_v in_o the_o peaceable_a communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n as_o well_o as_o our_o ancestor_n at_o far_o as_o the_o roman_a court_n will_v give_v we_o leave_v neither_o be_v our_o ancestor_n so_o stupid_a to_o see_v themselves_o so_o fleece_v and_o trample_v upon_o and_o abuse_v by_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o sit_v still_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n and_o blow_v their_o nose_n they_o do_v by_o their_o law_n exclude_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n out_o of_o england_n so_o far_o as_o they_o judge_v it_o necessary_a for_o the_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o kingdom_n that_o be_v his_o patronage_n of_o church_n his_o legate_n and_o legantine_n court_v his_o bull_n and_o sentence_n and_o excommunication_n his_o legislative_a power_n his_o power_n to_o receive_v appeal_n except_o only_o in_o case_n where_o the_o kingdom_n do_v give_v consent_n they_o threaten_v he_o further_a to_o make_v a_o wall_n of_o separation_n between_o he_o and_o they_o we_o have_v more_o experience_n than_o our_o ancestor_n have_v that_o their_o remedy_n be_v not_o sovereign_a or_o sufficient_a enough_o that_o if_o we_o
do_v the_o sorban_a doctor_n in_o former_a age_n value_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n now_o of_o late_a the_o court_n of_o rome_n have_v learn_v another_o method_n to_o purge_v their_o doctor_n when_o they_o displease_v they_o it_o be_v a_o shrewd_a sign_n when_o man_n be_v glad_a to_o cut_v out_o the_o tongue_n of_o their_o own_o witness_n here_o he_o fall_v into_o a_o bitter_a invective_n against_o our_o bloody_a law_n and_o bloody_a execution_n it_o be_v hard_o when_o they_o come_v to_o accuse_v we_o of_o blood_n guiltiness_n i_o can_v require_v he_o with_o a_o black_a list_n of_o murder_n and_o massacre_n to_o the_o purpose_n indeed_o the_o waldenses_n alone_o may_v furnish_v i_o with_o overmuch_a store_n of_o matter_n who_o first_o beginning_n be_v so_o ancient_a that_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o like_o the_o spring_n head_n of_o nilus_n scarce_o to_o be_v search_v out_o but_o innocent_a blood_n cry_v loud_a enough_o of_o itself_o without_o help_n i_o choose_v rather_o at_o this_o time_n to_o use_v the_o buckler_n then_o the_o sword_n the_o accusation_n of_o they_o be_v no_o acquittal_n of_o we_o whatsoever_o he_o say_v here_o against_o the_o church_n or_o state_n of_o england_n for_o cruelty_n be_v clear_o and_o satisfactory_o answer_v in_o my_o reply_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o chalcedon_n 4._o whither_o i_o refer_v he_o afterward_o he_o tell_v how_o unlucky_a i_o be_o in_o this_o chapter_n that_o do_v absolute_o clear_v their_o religion_n of_o calumny_n which_o protestant_n most_o injurious_o charge_v upon_o they_o that_o their_o vassalage_n to_o the_o pope_n destroy_v their_o subjection_n to_o their_o prince_n by_o cite_v so_o many_o instance_n where_o catholic_n remain_v such_o have_v disobey_v the_o pope_n their_o religion_n be_v the_o same_o with_o we_o that_o be_v christian_a and_o need_v not_o to_o be_v clear_v from_o be_v a_o source_n of_o sedition_n or_o a_o incentive_a to_o rebellion_n it_o be_v not_o accuse_v by_o we_o but_o the_o envious_a man_n have_v sow_v tare_n among_o the_o wheat_n no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o seditious_a opinion_n have_v be_v devise_v and_o disperse_v and_o cherish_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o this_o last_o age_n which_o be_v destructive_a to_o loyalty_n and_o due_a subjection_n to_o prince_n and_o how_o some_o of_o our_o own_o country_n man_n come_v to_o be_v season_v with_o these_o pernicious_a principle_n more_o than_o other_o nation_n 4._o i_o have_v partly_o show_v in_o the_o place_n allege_v the_o instance_n by_o i_o cite_v in_o this_o chapter_n be_v before_o these_o poisonous_a opinion_n be_v hatch_v and_o so_o be_v alogether_o impertinent_a to_o that_o purpose_n for_o which_o he_o urge_v they_o they_o prove_v that_o those_o roman_a catholic_n at_o that_o time_n be_v loyal_a subject_n they_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o all_o roman_a catho●icks_n at_o this_o time_n be_v loyal_a subject_n that_o be_v to_o infer_v a_o general_a conclu●i●n_n from_o particular_a premise_n or_o to_o argue_v àminore_fw-la ad_fw-la majus_fw-la affirmatiuè_fw-la which_o be_v mere_a sophistry_n but_o i_o shall_v ready_o grant_v more_o than_o he_o prove_v and_o as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v seek_v with_o reason_n that_o those_o seditious_a doctrine_n be_v never_o general_o receive_v nor_o yet_o by_o the_o great_a and_o sound_a part_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o that_o at_o this_o day_n i_o hope_v they_o be_v almost_o bury_v if_o ever_o god_n be_v so_o gracious_a unto_o we_o as_o to_o suffer_v we_o to_o meet_v together_o in_o a_o council_n or_o assembly_n either_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n or_o of_o the_o western_a church_n the_o first_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v be_v to_o weed_n out_o all_o seditious_a opinion_n both_o among_o they_o and_o we_o which_o be_v scandalous_a to_o religion_n and_o destructive_a to_o all_o civil_a society_n in_o the_o next_o place_n he_o fanci_v to_o himself_o a_o platform_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n that_o christ_n be_v to_o build_v his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n upon_o the_o basis_n of_o a_o multitude_n of_o earthly_a kingdom_n see_v it_o necessary_a to_o make_v a_o bond_n of_o unity_n betwixt_o the_o church_n that_o for_o this_o reason_n he_o give_v the_o principality_n among_o his_o apostle_n to_o st._n peter_n and_o consequent_o to_o his_o successor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o one_o see_v m●ght_v by_o the_o ordinary_a providence_n of_o almighty_a god_n keep_v a_o continuance_n of_o succession_n from_o st._n peter_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n which_o the_o vicissitude_n of_o humane_a nature_n permit_v not_o to_o all_o the_o apostolical_a see_v hence_o rome_n be_v invest_v with_o the_o privilege_n of_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o hinge_n upon_o which_o the_o common_a government_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n depend_v which_o be_v remove_v the_o church_n vanish_v into_o a_o pure_a anarchy_n excellent_o well_o contrive_v sr._n thomas_n moores_n utopia_n or_o my_o lord_n verulam_n new_a atlantis_n may_v give_v place_n unto_o it_o what_o great_a pity_n it_o be_v that_o he_o have_v not_o be_v one_o of_o christ_n counsellor_n when_o he_o first_o form_v his_o church_n only_o it_o seem_v a_o little_a too_o saucy_a with_o christ._n christian_n shall_v argue_v thus_o christ_n form_v his_o church_n thus_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o best_a form_n not_o thus_o this_o be_v the_o best_a form_n therefore_o christ_n form_v his_o church_n after_o this_o manner_n the_o old_a hermit_n pray_v to_o god_n for_o rain_n &_o fair_a weather_n for_o his_o garden_n as_o he_o think_v most_o expedient_a for_o it_o and_o have_v his_o desire_n yet_o his_o garden_n do_v not_o prosper_v whereas_o other_o garden_n which_o want_v that_o special_a privilege_n prosper_v well_o his_o brother_n hermite_n tell_v he_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o thou_o fool_n di●st_v thou_o think_v thyself_o wise_a than_o god_n i_o wonder_v he_o do_v not_o go_v one_o step_n high_o to_o make_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n universal_a emperor_n also_o for_o prevention_n of_o civil_a war_n and_o bloodshed_n among_o christian_n and_o so_o he_o may_v have_v be_v rex_fw-la idem_fw-la hominum_fw-la d●vumque_fw-la sacerdos_n now_o let_v we_o take_v his_o frame_n in_o piece_n and_o look_v upon_o it_o in_o parcel_n st._n paul_n reckon_v up_o not_o one_o but_o seven_o band_n of_o unity_n among_o christian_n one_o body_n one_o spirit_n one_o hope_n of_o our_o call_n one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n 4.4_o one_o god_n and_o father_n of_o all_o first_o one_o body_n what_o can_v be_v more_o prodigious_a then_o for_o the_o member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n to_o war_n one_o w●th_n another_o one_o spirit_n that_o be_v the_o holy-ghost_n which_o be_v the_o soul_n that_o enlive_v the_o church_n can_v there_o be_v a_o better_a bond_n of_o unity_n to_o the_o body_n than_o the_o soul_n one_o hope_n of_o our_o call_v we_o must_v be_v all_o friend_n in_o heaven_n why_o do_v we_o bite_v and_o kick_v one_o another_o in_o the_o way_n thither_o one_o lord_n by_o who_o blood_n we_o be_v redeem_v shall_v they_o pursue_v one_o another_o as_o mortal_a enemy_n who_o serve_v the_o same_o lord_n one_o faith_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o adulterate_v it_o with_o new_a devise_n to_o raise_v contention_n one_o baptism_n we_o be_v mark_v with_o the_o same_o cogniscance_n we_o use_v the_o same_o word_n we_o fight_v under_o the_o same_o standard_n why_o do_v we_o mistake_v one_o another_o for_o enemy_n last_o one_o god_n and_o father_n of_o all_o who_o be_v above_o all_o by_o his_o excellency_n through_o all_o by_o his_o providence_n and_o in_o all_o by_o the_o inhabitation_n of_o his_o grace_n above_o all_o as_o father_n through_o all_o as_o son_n in_o all_o as_o holy-ghost_n for_o christian_n to_o fight_v against_o christian_a be_v to_o divide_v this_o one_o god_n and_o commit_v he_o against_o himself_o among_o all_o these_o band_n of_o unity_n why_o do_v st._n paul_n forget_v unus_fw-la papa_n one_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o spiritual_a monarch_n if_o there_o have_v be_v any_o such_o thing_n here_o have_v be_v the_o proper_a place_n for_o it_o second_o i_o will_v not_o dispute_v with_o he_o about_o this_o whether_o christ_n do_v give_v st._n peter_n a_o principality_n among_o the_o apostle_n so_o he_o do_v not_o rob_v paul_n to_o cloth_n peter_n but_o likewise_o consent_n to_o i_o that_o this_o be_v but_o a_o principality_n of_o order_n and_o that_o the_o principality_n of_o power_n do_v r●st_v in_o the_o college_n of_o the_o apostle_n there_o and_o now_o in_o their_o successor_n a_o general_n council_n which_o be_v a_o sufficient_a band_n of_o unity_n as_o i_o have_v former_o demonstrate_v i_o wish_v this_o refuter_fw-la have_v express_v himself_o more_o clear_o whether_o he_o be_v for_o a_o beginning_n of_o order_n &_o unity_n or_o for_o
latin_n heretic_n and_o schismatic_n and_o principal_o upon_o this_o ground_n of_o the_o pope_n claim_n of_o a_o spiritual_a monarchy_n and_o that_o gerson_n apprehend_v their_o word_n in_o this_o sense_n it_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o context_n his_o position_n be_v this_o that_o man_n ought_v not_o general_o to_o be_v bind_v by_o the_o positive_a determination_n of_o pope_n to_o hold_v and_o believe_v one_o and_o the_o same_o form_n of_o government_n in_o thing_n that_o do_v not_o immediate_o concern_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o the_o gospel_n from_o thence_o he_o proceed_v to_o set_v down_o some_o different_a custom_n of_o the_o greek_a &_o latin_a church_n both_o which_o he_o do_v justify_v cite_v s._n austin_n to_o prove_v that_o in_o all_o such_o thing_n the_o custom_n of_o the_o country_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v and_o among_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o difference_n this_o be_v one_o that_o the_o greek_a church_n pay_v not_o such_o subsidy_n and_o duty_n as_o the_o gallicane_n church_n do_v it_o seem_v that_o the_o pope_n will_v have_v exact_v they_o ●●_o and_o that_o thereupon_o the_o grecian_n do_v separate_v from_o he_o use_v this_o free_a expression_n potentiam_fw-la tuam_fw-la recognoscimus_fw-la avaritiam_fw-la tuam_fw-la implere_fw-la non_fw-la possumus_fw-la vivite_fw-la per_fw-la vos_fw-la we_o know_v thy_o might_n we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o satisfy_v thy_o covetousness_n live_v by_o yourselves_o and_o from_o thence_o the_o aforesaid_a author_n draw_v this_o conclusion_n that_o per_fw-la hanc_fw-la consider_v ationem_fw-la bene_fw-la captam_fw-la etc._n etc._n upon_o this_o consideration_n they_o may_v proceed_v to_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o french_a church_n and_o the_o liberty_n thereof_o notwithstanding_o the_o contradiction_n which_o perhaps_o some_o of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n will_v make_v there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n or_o syllable_n herein_o that_o make_v against_o i_o but_o there_o be_v both_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n &_o the_o opinion_n of_o gerson_n for_o the_o justification_n of_o our_o reformation_n and_o separation_n from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n finis_fw-la sect._n 1_o three_o essential_o of_o a_o true_a church_n great_a difference_n between_o a_o true_a church_n and_o a_o perfect_a church_n actual_a want_n of_o essential_n not_o conclusive_a to_o god_n ch_n 8._o sect._n 3_o particular_a rite_n form_n opinion_n no_o essential_o schism_n be_v not_o always_o about_o esentials_n schism_n be_v not_o a_o great_a sin_n than_o idolatry_n 1._o cor._n 10.10.21_o aust._n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr bapt_a c._n 8._o op_v l._n 1._o aust._n ep._n 48._o ibidem_fw-la 1_o tivi_fw-la 2.17_o there_o may_v be_v just_a cause_n of_o separation_n no_o just_a cause_n of_o schism_n c._n 2._o s_o 6_o particular_a church_n may_v give_v just_a cause_n of_o separation_n c._n 2_o sect._n 4._o pref_n p._n 20._o rom._n 3.8_o inf._n unmask_v ch_z 7._o sect_n 112_o p._n 534._o lib._n 2._o cont_n ep_n parmen_fw-la e._n 11._o sect._n 2._o pro●●stans_n have_v forsake_v no_o ancient_a church_n in_o sacrament_n 1._o cor._n 19_o math._n 26.27_o sect._n 3_o the_o true_a cause_n of_o the_o separation_n of_o some_o protestant_n psal._n 19_o essence_n of_o thing_n be_v indivisible_a &_o destroy_v by_o addition_n as_o well_o as_o subtraction_n how_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v and_o be_v not_o a_o true_a church_n 1_o cor._n 13.12_o john_n 4.22_o eph._n 5.26_o we_o have_v not_o leave_v the_o roman_a church_n in_o essentials_n con._n eph_n p._n 2._o act_n 6_o c_o 7._o aust_n ep_n 118._o nor_o differ_v in_o substance_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n aust_n y._n 1._o de_fw-fr happen_v c._n 8._o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a or_o prudent_a to_o leave_v the_o english_a church_n and_o adhere_v to_o the_o roman_a for_o fear_n of_o schism_n the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n depart_v out_o of_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n sect._n 4._o 1_o cor._n 13.9_o 12._o jam._n 2.1_o to_o communicate_v with_o schismatic_n be_v not_o always_o schism_n soz●m_fw-la l_o 4_o ●_o 19_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v not_o communicate_v with_o schismatic_n 1_o cor._n 1.2_o 11._o c._n 15_o 12._o rev_n 2.14_o 15.20_o sect._n 1_o objection_n against_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o point_n of_o schism_n be_v colourable_a not_o forcible_a author_n ought_v to_o be_v cite_v full_o and_o faithful_o protestant_n contesse_v no_o separation_n from_o the_o universal_a church_n i_o will_v c._n 3_o p._n 132._o c._n 1_o s._n 1._o nor_o from_o the_o roman_a but_o only_o in_o her_o error_n 1._o p●t_fw-la 4._o 8._o phil_n 3_o 15._o sect._n 5._o not_o the_o separation_n but_o the_o cause_n make_v the_o schism_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o forsake_v know_v error_n c._n 9_o sect._n 5_o our_o reformation_n no_o separation_n 2_o gal_n 9_o a●t_fw-la 30._o lawful_a to_o communicate_v with_o the_o eastern_a church_n calv._n ep●st_n 141._o ratio_fw-la ordinis_fw-la &_o discipline_n fratrum_fw-la bohemo_fw-la rum_o ibid._n calvin_n no_o enemy_n to_o episcopacy_n epist._n ad_fw-la mart._n schaling_n epl._n ad_fw-la reg._n polo_n mae_fw-la calv._n ep_n impres_n gen._n a_o 1570._o pag._n 340._o ep._n ad_fw-la r._n polon_n 4_o inst._n c._n 18._o sect_n 18._o doctor_n potter_n clear_v ch._n 9_o sect._n 5._o ibid_fw-la sect._n 2._o p._n 49._o ●el_a l_o 2._o do_v eccl_n m●l_n c_o 6._o aust_n de_fw-fr ve●_n re●_n c._n 6._o ibid._n and_o master_n chillingwo●●h_v p_o 245._o p._n 312._o p._n 191._o 6.5_o p._n 273._o te●t_fw-la l._n 4_o cont._n don_n c._n 23._o c._n 5._o p._n 302._o as_o great_a difference_n among_o the_o romanist_n as_o between_o they_o and_o the_o eastern_a church_n or_o we_o c._n 1._o s._n 13._o sect._n 2._o c._n 2._o s._n 3._o wh●th●r_o all_o those_o be_v schismatic_n who_o want_v bishop_n the_o romanist_n no_o fit_a person_n to_o object_n schism_n to_o protestant_n c_o 2._o s_o 6._o 5._o c._n 2._o s._n 8._o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v better_a ground_n than_o personal_a fault_n of_o pope_n inf._n c._n 7_o s_o sect._n 1_o p._n 8._o p._n 12._o p._n 16._o all_o schism_n be_v not_o in_o essential_o bar._n annal_n a_o 878._o antimach●aveil_n in_o ●●ist_n ad_fw-la lect._n error_n in_o faith_n obtrude_v justify_v a_o separation_n sect._n 2._o me●●rall_a schism_n 1_o john_n 3._o 15._o rome_n 2_o 29._o sect._n 3_o communion_n in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n not_o necessary_a always_o sacrament_n pure_o and_o corrupt_o administer_v the_o same_o sacrament_n sect._n 4._o schismatic_n in_o part_n do_v st●ll_o remain_v in_o the_o catholic_n church_n a●●t_fw-la l._n 1._o d●_n bapt_v cont_n don●istas_n idemo_fw-la 10_o aug._n ep_n 48._o r._n c._n his_o confession_n sect._n 5._o the_o britannic_a church_n never_o judge_v schismatic_n sect._n 6._o what_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_n church_n in●erest_a make_v catholick●_n with_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n th●m_fw-la a_o jesu._n cite_v by_o doctor_n field_n l._n 3_o c._n 1._o 〈◊〉_d ibid._n babe_v upon_o number_n c_o 7._o cam_n annal_n elis._n an._n 1560._o sect._n 7._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v material_o idolatrous_a 1_o cor._n 12.16_o bell_n l._n 4._o ●e_v sac._n euch._n c._n 29_o special_a faith_n be_v no_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n rom._n 8_o 33_o mark_v 16.16_o papist_n can_v pretend_v to_o no_o other_o sacrifice_n than_o protestant_n bell_n l_o 1._o de_fw-fr m●s●_n c._n 25._o sect._n 8._o 4_o way_n to_o incur_v heretical_a pravity_n bell._n de_fw-fr eccles._n milit_fw-la l._n 3._o c._n 15._o the_o power_n of_o general_a council_n the_o pope_n confirmation_n add_v nothing_o to_o general_a counsel_n platina_n acquiescence_n to_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_a council_n be_v necessary_a 1_o cor_fw-la 9_o bell_n de_fw-fr ro._n pont_n c._n 4._o c._n 2._o sect._n 9_o mix_v ordination_n the_o english_a church_n lawful_o establish_v not_o lawful_o suppress_v the_o english_a church_n nor_o dea●_n but_o under_o persecution_n sect._n 10._o ●_o 4._o cont_n cresion_n c._n 61._o sect._n 1_o protestant_n not_o author_n of_o the_o schism_n hi●t_fw-la conc._n try_v a_o 1538._o sect._n 2._o the_o parliament_n not_o compel_v camd._n an._n eliz._n anno_fw-la 1559._o bishop_n gardiner_z speed_z in_o hen._n 8._o c._n 21_o n._n 1_o c_o 5._o de_fw-fr vera_fw-la ob●dientia_fw-la in_o fine_a archbishop_n cranmer_z speed_z baker_n etc._n etc._n in_o henr._n 8._o image_n of_o both_o church_n second_o edition_n pag._n 413._o sand_n de_fw-fr schism_n pag_n 115._o sacrificio_fw-la missae_fw-la intersuit_n quotidie_fw-la dum_fw-la regnabat_fw-la henricus_fw-la crumwell_n barnes_n speed_v l._n 9_o c._n 21._o l_o 1._o cont._n parm._n papist_n be_v the_o right_a heir_n of_o the_o don●rists_n not_o protestant_n opt._n l_o 1._o cont._n par._n in●initio_fw-la opt._n l._n 2._o cont._n parm._n in_o initio_fw-la psal._n 2._o roman_a cathol●cks_n sin_v not_o against_o conscience_n in_o their_o separation_n henry_n the_o eight_o no_o protestant_n ●ul_a